Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n doctrine_n scripture_n tradition_n 6,474 5 9.3640 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A16913 A reply to Fulke, In defense of M. D. Allens scroll of articles, and booke of purgatorie. By Richard Bristo Doctor of Diuinitie ... perused and allowed by me Th. Stapleton Bristow, Richard, 1538-1581. 1580 (1580) STC 3802; ESTC S111145 372,424 436

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

as_o before_o and_o again_o neither_o do_v we_o require_v you_o to_o believe_v any_o one_o company_n of_o man_n 62._o ar._n 62._o more_o than_o another_o but_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n before_o falsehood_n which_o you_o must_v search_v in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v belike_o for_o this_o &_o much_o other_o such_o apocryphal_a stuff_n that_o your_o book_n be_v keep_v in_o so_o long_o and_o in_o the_o end_n also_o fain_o to_o come_v forth_o without_o privilege_n yea_o he_o be_v so_o peremptory_a in_o his_o exception_n scripture_n fu●e_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o apostle_n nor_o the_o angel_n without_o scripture_n the_o most_o absurd_o he_o attribute_v to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o without_o scripture_n no_o more_o then_o to_o jackstraw_n and_o consequent_o with_o scripture_n as_o much_o to_o jackstraw_n as_o to_z the_o apostle_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o d._n allen_n he_o speak_v it_o because_o he_o believe_v it_o 4._o pur._n 24.4_o 2._o cor._n 4._o he_o will_v fain_o counterfeit_v his_o speech_n like_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o belief_n be_v not_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o practice_n of_o man_n which_o though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o good_a yet_o they_o be_v such_o as_o may_v deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v again_o 1._o pur._n 449._o gal._n 1._o where_o he_o abuse_v that_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v to_o the_o galathian_o of_o preach_v &_o their_o receive_n of_o it_o &_o turn_v it_o as_o speak_v of_o only_a scripture_n it_o vex_v you_o at_o the_o very_a hart_n say_v he_o that_o we_o require_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o confirm_v your_o doctrine_n have_v a_o plain_a commandment_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o man_n teach_v otherwise_o then_o the_o word_n of_o god_n allow_v he_o be_v to_o be_v accurse_v as_o though_o s._n paul_n there_o command_v to_o accurse_v himself_o and_o all_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n if_o they_o confirm_v not_o all_o their_o doctrine_n with_o express_a scripture_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o you_o here_o require_v no_o sir_n nothing_o so_o only_o he_o accurse_v they_o which_o shall_v preach_v contrary_a to_o that_o he_o have_v preach_v &_o the_o galathian_o have_v receive_v which_o be_v as_o you_o see_v tradition_n by_o mouth_n in_o which_o manner_n he_o teach_v they_o &_o other_o church_n all_o christian_a religion_n &_o therein_o as_o one_o principal_a point_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n both_o old_a &_o new_a if_o at_o the_o leastwise_o any_o book_n of_o the_o new_a as_o then_o be_v write_v which_o can_v not_o be_v many_o before_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o be_v as_o by_o conference_n of_o time_n it_o may_v well_o be_v prove_v the_o first_o of_o all_o s._n paul_n epistle_n and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o church_n authority_n in_o her_o judgement_n and_o practise_v namely_o of_o her_o divine_a service_n whereunto_o i_o join_v as_o the_o principals_n in_o the_o authority_n first_o the_o counsel_n and_o second_o the_o pope_n for_o to_o they_o likewise_o he_o make_v his_o exception_n 27._o pur._n 430._o counsel_n dem._n 27._o say_v wherefore_o if_o any_o council_n decree_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v act._n 15._o &_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a with_o diverse_a other_o we_o receive_v they_o with_o all_o humility_n as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n but_o if_o any_o council_n decree_v contrary_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o many_o do_v without_o all_o presumption_n or_o pride_n we_o may_v just_o reject_v they_o 28._o pur._n 194._o see_v apostolic_a dem._n 28._o then_o of_o the_o other_o yet_o be_v not_o all_o that_o gregory_n write_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o authority_n whereof_o we_o believe_v not_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n as_o i_o have_v often_o show_v much_o less_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o only_o against_o each_o pope_n several_o but_o also_o against_o their_o whole_a line_n and_o entire_a succession_n he_o except_v in_o like_a manner_n say_v 28._o succession_n dem._n 43._o a●_n 28._o although_o we_o can_v rehearse_v in_o order_n as_o many_o succession_n in_o our_o church_n as_o the_o papist_n boast_v of_o in_o they_o yet_o be_v that_o nothing_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o must_v be_v try_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o little_a after_o we_o require_v at_o the_o papist_n hand_n that_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o hold_v the_o church_n not_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n or_o rehearse_v of_o their_o name_n but_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n for_o although_o we_o do_v rehearse_v innumerable_a name_n of_o bishop_n in_o orderly_a succession_n on_o our_o side_n we_o will_v not_o require_v man_n to_o believe_v we_o but_o only_o because_o we_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o deed_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v frankeling_n fulke_o what_o a_o frankeling_n that_o you_o deal_v very_o frank_o with_o we_o to_o renounce_v so_o free_o such_o a_o goodly_a evidence_n because_o you_o can_v not_o make_v so_o much_o as_o any_o show_n thereof_o for_o otherwise_o when_o you_o have_v any_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o what_o mountybanke_n pedlar_n be_v so_o face_v so_o boast_v so_o vaunt_v as_o you_o and_o your_o fellow_n iiij_o against_o the_o father_n 26._o father_n dem._n 26._o now_o after_o all_o this_o i_o will_v open_v his_o like_a except_v against_o the_o father_n both_o in_o general_a and_o also_o express_v diverse_a of_o their_o name_n although_o it_o have_v be_v open_v in_o part_n already_o by_o other_o occasion_n and_o touch_v the_o first_o true_a it_o be_v that_o he_o often_o brag_v much_o of_o the_o father_n which_o live_v in_o the_o first_o 435.370.371_o first_o ar._n 39_o pu._n 30.177_o 435.370.371_o two_o hundred_o or_o 186.247.304.331.357.364.382_o or_o pur._n 186.247.304.331.357.364.382_o one_o hundred_o year_n chaleng_v we_o to_o prove_v our_o doctrine_n out_o of_o they_o and_o not_o out_o of_o the_o late_a father_n after_o they_o even_o with_o as_o much_o reason_n as_o he_o common_o challenge_v we_o to_o prove_v all_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n utter_o without_o all_o ground_n &_o but_o mere_a voluntary_o onely_n voluntary_o fulke_n two_o onely_n the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o which_o ensample_n therefore_o be_v much_o to_o be_v note_v but_o here_o notwithstanding_o i_o shall_v declare_v how_o he_o except_v smooth_o and_o simple_o against_o all_o the_o father_n against_o all_o in_o general_n and_o express_o also_o say_v be_v they_o never_o so_o ancient_a wherein_o how_o well_o he_o agree_v with_o himself_o i_o defer_v to_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n and_o in_o effect_n he_o have_v already_o so_o do_v in_o call_v so_o often_o afore_o for_o only_a scripture_n but_o yet_o to_o show_v it_o more_o manifest_o and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o very_a face_n itself_o thus_o he_o say_v 205._o pur._n 205._o whatsoever_o he_o be_v or_o how_o long_o soever_o it_o be_v since_o he_o write_v because_o it_o have_v not_o authority_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o weigh_v it_o as_o the_o word_n of_o a_o man_n who_o credit_n in_o divine_a matter_n be_v nothing_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n again_o 202._o pur._n 202._o when_o all_o authority_n out_o of_o god_n word_n fail_v you_o whereby_o you_o shall_v prove_v that_o the_o soul_n depart_v receive_v benefit_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o live_n you_o fly_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n but_o man_n authority_n be_v to_o weak_a to_o carry_v away_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n away_o with_o man_n writing_n show_v i_o but_o one_o scripture_n to_o prove_v it_o again_o if_o for_o these_o and_o a_o hundred_o such_o 22._o pur._n 22._o you_o can_v show_v no_o better_a warrant_n than_o the_o term_n of_o your_o father_n the_o practice_n of_o your_o elder_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o mortal_a man_n the_o curse_n of_o god_n by_o esay_n must_v needs_o be_v turn_v over_o unto_o you_o again_o 58._o pur._n 58._o your_o reason_n either_o be_v manifest_a wrest_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o else_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o mortal_a man_n again_o 386._o pur._n 386._o we_o need_v no_o shift_n m._n allen_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o doctor_n who_o we_o never_o allow_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v bold_o say_v whatsoever_o we_o find_v in_o they_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n he_o mean_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o receive_v it_o with_o their_o praise_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v disagreable_a to_o the_o scripture_n we_o refuse_v with_o their_o leave_n again_o 363._o pur._n 363._o now_o touch_v the_o credit_n and_o
blind_a presumption_n to_o search_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o commentary_n of_o the_o doctor_n but_o not_o also_o i_o trow_v without_o the_o commentary_n of_o caluine_n and_o such_o like_a companion_n thus_o he_o say_v 407._o pur._n 407._o and_o happy_a be_v those_o which_o not_o regard_v the_o stream_n of_o water_n that_o run_v through_o the_o vein_n of_o earth_n but_o seek_v to_o the_o only_a fountain_n of_o heavenly_a truth_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v certain_a comfort_n of_o salvation_n 285._o pur._n 285._o and_o again_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n sure_o as_o the_o sun_n be_v not_o obscure_v with_o the_o dust_n that_o a_o cock_n cast_v up_o when_o he_o scrape_v on_o the_o dunghill_n dunghill_n the_o doctor_n write_n a_o dunghill_n no_o more_o be_v the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n or_o the_o light_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n darken_v by_o all_o the_o mist_n of_o man_n devise_n which_o allen_n or_o his_o complice_n can_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a heap_n of_o superstition_n and_o error_n to_o deface_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o church_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o light_n unto_o our_o step_n and_o therefore_o we_o will_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o man_n tradition_n our_o doctrine_n shall_v one_o day_n be_v try_v before_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o make_v no_o account_n how_o we_o be_v judge_v by_o man_n day_n 4._o 1._o cor._n 4._o so_o proper_o he_o utter_v his_o presumption_n in_o the_o word_n that_o the_o apostle_n clean_o contrary_a do_v speak_v in_o exceed_a great_a fear_n it_o follow_v your_o way_n be_v your_o own_o way_n &_o not_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o because_o you_o take_v another_o way_n unto_o salvation_n then_o the_o only_a right_a way_n jesus_n christ_n therefore_o by_o his_o own_o sentence_n you_o be_v all_o thief_n and_o murderer_n have_v any_o see_v a_o man_n so_o drunken_a so_o blind_v with_o pride_n well_o then_o in_o the_o other_o place_n of_o search_v the_o meaning_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o alone_o and_o neglect_v the_o receive_v expositor_n what_o say_v he_o whether_o the_o old_a doctor_n be_v more_o like_a to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n than_o the_o protestant_n 434._o pur._n 434._o i_o have_v answer_v before_o we_o will_v make_v no_o comparison_n with_o they_o modest_o speak_v a_o man_n will_v think_v but_o what_o follow_v neither_o will_v we_o challenge_v the_o likelihood_n to_o we_o neither_o will_v we_o leave_v it_o to_o they_o i_o marry_o hold_v your_o own_o we_o pray_v you_o and_o why_o so_o for_o whether_o soever_o we_o do_v we_o shall_v be_v never_o the_o more_o certain_a of_o the_o truth_n you_o say_v true_a for_o so_o much_o as_o concern_v yourselves_o for_o in_o deed_n no_o certainty_n of_o truth_n but_o most_o certain_a certainty_n of_o error_n in_o your_o understanding_n but_o in_o what_o so_o ever_o the_o doctor_n do_v agree_v who_o so_o expound_v the_o scripture_n unto_o that_o shall_v be_v ever_o most_o certain_a of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v enough_o though_o not_o always_o certain_a of_o that_o same_o very_a place_n meaning_n as_o in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n i_o declare_v more_o at_o large_a forth_o now_o a_o god_n name_n 2._o supra_fw-la cap._n 6._o par_fw-fr 2._o but_o this_o will_v we_o set_v down_o as_o a_o most_o certain_a principle_n that_o no_o man_n can_v understand_v the_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n by_o which_o they_o be_v write_v the_o meaning_n of_o some_o place_n one_o may_v attain_v unto_o which_o have_v not_o that_o spirit_n but_o to_o understand_v they_o always_o agréeable_o to_o the_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v without_o that_o same_o spirit_n forth_o again_o what_o then_o shall_v we_o arrogate_v the_o spirit_n as_o proper_a to_o we_o and_o deny_v it_o to_o they_o god_n forbid_v they_o have_v their_o measure_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o so_o have_v we_o hereof_o arise_v a_o objection_n how_o then_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n contrary_a to_o itself_o because_o they_o and_o we_o agree_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o answer_v god_n forbid_v cyprian_a and_o cornelius_n be_v both_o endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n yet_o they_o agree_v not_o both_o in_o one_o interpretation_n nor_o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n yea_o sir_n cyprian_n as_o he_o be_v of_o cornelius_n his_o spirit_n so_o be_v he_o likewise_o of_o cornelius_n his_o judgement_n implicitè_fw-fr as_o we_o term_v it_o though_o explicit_a he_o be_v of_o a_o other_o of_o a_o erronius_a judgement_n and_o that_o according_a to_o his_o own_o humane_a spirit_n and_o not_o according_a to_o god_n spirit_n as_o at_o this_o day_n likewise_o and_o always_o whensoever_o any_o catholic_a man_n of_o ignorance_n err_v express_o yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o effect_n he_o be_v of_o the_o truth_n with_o the_o other_o catholic_n which_o err_v not_o because_o he_o quiet_o continue_v in_o unity_n with_o they_o nor_o do_v not_o obstinate_o hold_v his_o own_o error_n against_o they_o now_o whether_o the_o case_n be_v so_o between_o the_o old_a doctor_n and_o you_o brief_o and_o manifest_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o this_o that_o neither_o you_o at_o this_o time_n will_v be_v reform_v by_o they_o nor_o they_o in_o their_o time_n will_v be_v reform_v by_o your_o forefather_n aerius_n jovinianus_n and_o such_o like_a but_o now_o that_o you_o have_v abrogate_a the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o god_n spirit_n both_o in_o the_o doctor_n and_o in_o yourselves_o say_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o your_o advice_n what_o then_o there_o remain_v but_o this_o second_o principle_n as_o certain_a as_o the_o first_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v a_o meaning_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o deceivable_a man_n but_o only_o in_o the_o scripture_n where_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n no_o sir_n why_o suppose_v those_o man_n be_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o any_o other_o have_v the_o same_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o apostle_n first_o have_v but_o of_o that_o enough_o before_o forth_o therefore_o therefore_o that_o the_o spirit_n may_v declare_v his_o own_o meaning_n 86._o ar._n 86._o one_o place_n of_o scripture_n must_v be_v expound_v by_o a_o other_o for_o the_o hard_a place_n of_o scripture_n must_v be_v open_v by_o easy_a place_n all_o other_o ordinary_a mean_n and_o help_n of_o wit_n learning_n knowledge_n of_o tong_n diligence_n in_o hear_v read_v and_o pray_v be_v subordinate_a and_o serve_v to_o this_o search_n and_o trial_n and_o be_v this_o way_n so_o sure_a and_o certain_a i_o marry_o for_o who_o soever_o observe_v this_o search_n and_o trial_n most_o precise_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n most_o certain_o and_o may_v he_o not_o trust_v a_o other_o which_o have_v so_o precise_o observe_v it_o as_o for_o example_n the_o protestant_n i_o think_v as_o yourself_o or_o m._n caluine_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o cry_v you_o mercy_n you_o mean_v not_o they_o well_o then_o may_v he_o not_o trust_v the_o old_a father_n therein_o forsooth_o a_o comfortable_a doctrine_n for_o the_o ignorant_a forsooth_o or_o do_v not_o they_o observe_v it_o diligent_o no_o for_o who_o so_o ever_o be_v negligent_a in_o this_o search_n and_o trial_n though_o he_o have_v otherwise_o never_o so_o many_o and_o excellent_a grace_n and_o gift_n may_v easy_o be_v deceive_v yea_o you_o speak_v now_o a_o great_a word_n even_o when_o he_o think_v he_o follow_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o search_n if_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v always_o follow_v they_o shall_v not_o so_o light_o have_v pass_v over_o some_o thing_n as_o to_o condemn_v the_o protestant_n in_o aerius_n and_o vigilantius_n etc._n etc._n and_o other_o thing_n so_o slender_o have_v maintain_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n well_o then_o i_o see_v all_o be_v in_o a_o man_n own_o diligence_n to_o trust_v no_o man_n nor_o man_n but_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n confer_v the_o place_n and_o so_o gather_v the_o meaning_n by_o himself_o this_o be_v your_o most_o certain_a way_n i_o must_v therefore_o tell_v you_o a_o little_a of_o our_o diligence_n therein_o that_o you_o may_v certify_v we_o whether_o it_o be_v enough_o or_o no._n and_o the_o rather_o because_o you_o exhort_v our_o master_n d._n allen_n and_o say_v to_o he_o 9_o pur._n 9_o try_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o protestant_n and_o search_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o then_o undoubted_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o church_n also_o that_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n and_o again_o 62._o ar._n 62._o who_o have_v the_o truth_n you_o must_v search_v in_o the_o
be_v otherwise_o expound_v then_o of_o their_o cause_n 176._o pur._n 176._o yea_o and_o more_o than_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v neither_o express_o nor_o by_o any_o probable_a collection_n allow_v it_o but_o manifest_o condemn_v it_o 185._o pur._n 185._o again_o he_o can_v not_o with_o any_o seemly_a colour_n establish_v purgatory_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o only_a testimony_n of_o god_n word_n and_o will_n reveil_v and_o confirm_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n the_o machabée_n to_o be_v even_o so_o confirm_v as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o book_n he_o can_v never_o avoid_v and_o in_o effect_n he_o grant_v as_o i_o shall_v note_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n among_o his_o contradiction_n which_o be_v sufficient_a i_o trow_v to_o make_v at_o the_o least_o a_o seemly_a colour_n and_o a_o probable_a collection_n but_o in_o deed_n also_o a_o conclusion_n so_o necessary_a that_o he_o can_v never_o answer_v it_o but_o by_o shake_v the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o derogate_a from_o their_o confirmation_n which_o yet_o himself_o do_v attribute_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o four_o part_n what_o great_a promise_n he_o make_v to_o bring_v most_o evident_a scripture_n against_o we_o and_o also_o by_o scripture_n to_o prove_v his_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n triumph_v also_o before_o the_o victory_n &_o say_v that_o we_o dare_v not_o be_v try_v by_o scripture_n but_o reject_v the_o scripture_n whereupon_o a_o fourfold_a offer_n be_v make_v unto_o he_o now_o that_o we_o have_v see_v how_o precise_a he_o be_v with_o we_o to_o admit_v 1_o no_o evidence_n that_o we_o allege_v but_o scripture_n only_o both_o in_o all_o controversy_n and_o also_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o again_o 2_o no_o scripture_n which_o make_v so_o plain_o with_o we_o that_o he_o can_v not_o avoid_v it_o but_o by_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v canonical_a though_o he_o grant_v it_o to_o have_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o true_a church_n which_o move_v he_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o receive_v the_o other_o scripture_n for_o canonical_a and_o again_o 3_o no_o scripture_n that_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v canonical_a unless_o it_o make_v so_o express_o so_o plain_o so_o manifest_o and_o so_o necessary_o with_o we_o that_o it_o can_v not_o by_o any_o suttletie_n be_v avoid_v it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n what_o scripture_n he_o allege_v against_o we_o whether_o he_o observe_v himself_o the_o law_n that_o he_o so_o rigorous_o prescribe_v to_o we_o whether_o his_o scripture_n be_v so_o plain_a so_o manifest_a so_o evident_a that_o by_o no_o sutteltie_n they_o can_v be_v avoid_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n no_o need_n of_o sutteltie_n i_o assure_v you_o to_o avoid_v or_o delude_v they_o so_o frivolous_a be_v his_o allegation_n that_o with_o all_o facility_n and_o truth_n we_o shall_v answer_v they_o here_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o will_v only_o lay_v forth_o his_o great_a promise_n aforehande_v and_o so_o come_v orderly_o to_o the_o matter_n and_o to_o omit_v if_o he_o shall_v have_v to_o do_v with_o all_o the_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n what_o manifest_a &_o necessary_a confutation_n he_o will_v frame_v against_o they_o all_o and_o every_o one_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n alone_o have_v free_o afore_o they_o renounce_v all_o other_o probation_n according_a to_o his_o former_a say_n here_o that_o all_o truth_n and_o all_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n be_v plain_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o may_v be_v so_o prove_v by_o scripture_n &_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o know_v nothing_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v but_o it_o be_v so_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o scripture_n promise_n his_o great_a promise_n i_o will_v charge_v he_o no_o more_o but_o with_o his_o promise_n that_o he_o make_v of_o so_o confute_v we_o by_o plain_a scripture_n notwithstanding_o that_o all_o other_o evidence_n make_v for_o we_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o have_v already_o confess_v thus_o he_o say_v 187._o pur._n 187._o and_o that_o which_o i_o have_v to_o say_v in_o confutation_n of_o your_o heresy_n shall_v be_v no_o worse_o than_o the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n itself_o which_o be_v better_o than_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o world_n against_o it_o and_o again_o 30._o pur._n 30._o i_o be_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o god_n minister_n yet_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n i_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v both_o this_o and_o all_o other_o babilonicall_a bulwark_n that_o be_v cast_v up_o by_o satan_n &_o all_o his_o instrument_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o popish_a heresy_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o neither_o the_o mist_n of_o man_n invention_n which_o you_o call_v the_o light_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o darken_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o the_o error_n of_o mortal_a man_n which_o you_o term_v the_o force_n of_o god_n truth_n shall_v bear_v down_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n again_o 12._o pur._n 12._o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v manifest_a evidence_n that_o our_o adversary_n doctrine_n be_v clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n again_o 3._o ar._n 3._o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v none_o other_o faith_n in_o stead_n of_o true_a christianity_n but_o that_o which_o we_o hold_v as_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n again_o i_o can_v prove_v by_o s._n paul_n writing_n 59_o ar._n 59_o that_o in_o all_o article_n of_o faith_n he_o teach_v the_o same_o which_o we_o believe_v and_o for_o trial_n of_o this_o because_o it_o will_v require_v a_o whole_a volume_n if_o i_o shall_v prove_v every_o particular_a article_n wherein_o we_o dissent_v from_o you_o papist_n if_o you_o will_v name_v a_o article_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n yourself_o shall_v name_v enough_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v let_v it_o be_v this_o that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o one_o certain_a person_n and_o that_o the_o church_n flée_v into_o the_o wilderness_n at_o his_o come_n be_v to_o become_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o come_n and_o fle_v shall_v be_v so_o soon_o after_o christ_n passion_n the_o continuance_n so_o many_o age_n the_o end_n so_o long_o before_o christ_n second_o come_v wherein_o we_o agree_v not_o with_o s._n paul_n if_o i_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o we_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o i_o will_v revoke_v that_o article_n and_o agree_v with_o you_o therein_o yea_o and_o also_o to_o prove_v his_o own_o meaning_n and_o to_o disprove_v our_o meaning_n when_o we_o both_o allege_v scripture_n he_o will_v seek_v as_o he_o require_v of_o we_o to_o nothing_o likewise_o but_o scripture_n itself_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n he_o say_v you_o shall_v believe_v we_o rather_o than_o the_o papist_n because_o our_o ground_n and_o prove_n be_v better_a than_o they_o or_o else_o we_o require_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v better_a than_o they_o and_o there_o again_o if_o you_o bring_v out_o a_o false_a sense_n we_o believe_v you_o not_o because_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v false_a and_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lie_v his_o triumph_v in_o lie_v these_o be_v his_o worthy_a promise_n of_o which_o he_o have_v be_v so_o liberal_a belike_o because_o he_o know_v that_o we_o dare_v not_o once_o appear_v when_o scripture_n be_v allege_v by_o the_o protestant_n for_o such_o be_v his_o word_n 380._o pur._n 380._o we_o can_v show_v no_o cause_n in_o the_o world_n you_o say_v why_o we_o need_v in_o any_o one_o point_n of_o controversy_n depart_v from_o your_o church_n yet_o m._n allen_n this_o one_o cause_n shall_v serve_v for_o all_o because_o your_o church_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o dare_v not_o abide_v the_o trial_n thereof_o but_o will_v sit_v like_o a_o proud_a dame_n in_o a_o chair_n 28._o ar._n 28._o and_o control_v the_o scripture_n again_o the_o popish_a church_n can_v by_o no_o reason_n challenge_v apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n see_v she_o refuse_v to_o be_v try_v by_o their_o doctrine_n utter_v in_o their_o write_n again_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n 99.6_o ar._n 99.6_o and_o be_v rule_v thereby_o but_o the_o romish_a church_n will_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v rule_v only_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n therefore_o she_o be_v not_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n where_o by_o his_o foist_v in_o of_o the_o word_n only_o in_o the_o minor_a
the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v we_o according_a to_o the_o foresay_a rule_n in_o so_o much_o that_o we_o count_n it_o not_o at_o all_o catholic_a whatsoever_o shall_v appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o rule_v appoint_v you_o be_v a_o great_a reader_n of_o the_o doctor_n i_o see_v whosoever_o make_v that_o homily_n he_o take_v those_o word_n out_o of_o that_o brief_a instruction_n which_o in_o the_o first_o tome_n of_o the_o counsel_n follow_v the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n celestinus_fw-la to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n concern_v the_o semipelagian_o which_o bishop_n i_o think_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o same_o instruction_n they_o take_v it_o and_o so_o they_o say_v out_o of_o the_o determination_n of_o those_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o who_o time_n pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la begin_v their_o heresy_n that_o be_v p._n innocentius_n and_o p._n zozimus_n and_o out_o of_o certain_a aphrican_a counsel_n approve_v by_o those_o pope_n and_o after_o 8._o or_o 9_o such_o canon_n or_o article_n they_o make_v a_o end_n say_v as_o for_o certain_a more_o subtle_a point_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o resolve_v upon_o they_o we_o think_v all_o that_o suffice_v enough_o which_o the_o write_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_n teach_v we_o according_a to_o the_o foresay_a rule_n or_o canon_n in_o no_o wise_a think_v it_o catholic_a that_o shall_v appear_v to_o be_v contrary_a praefixis_fw-la sententijs_fw-la to_o the_o resolution_n set_v here_o before_o again_o in_o gen._n hom._n 58._o thou_o see_v into_o what_o great_a absurdity_n they_o fall_v qui_fw-la divinae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la canonem_fw-la sequi_fw-la nolunt_fw-la which_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o permit_v all_o to_o their_o own_o cogitation_n he_o answer_v the_o heretic_n which_o say_v that_o our_o lord_n take_v not_o true_a flesh_n then_o say_v chrysostome_n he_o neither_o be_v crucify_v nor_o die_v nor_o be_v bury_v nor_o rise_v again_o into_o such_o absurdity_n they_o fall_v because_o they_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o plain_a line_n of_o scripture_n but_o their_o own_o imagination_n of_o putative_a flesh_n such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o apparition_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n what_o be_v this_o for_o only_a scripture_n but_o if_o we_o be_v further_o urge_v we_o will_v allege_v that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o euang._n joan._n hom._n 58._o he_o that_o use_v not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o climb_v another_o way_n id_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la concessa_fw-la via_fw-la that_o be_v by_o a_o way_n not_o allow_v be_v a_o thief_n o_o christian_n spirit_n if_o you_o be_v urge_v you_o will_v call_v s._n chrysostome_n a_o thief_n by_o his_o own_o say_n for_o use_v tradition_n as_o though_o he_o use_v not_o scripture_n which_o use_v tradition_n or_o that_o scripture_n do_v not_o warrant_v tradition_n as_o 2._o the._n 2._o the_o thing_n which_o s._n chrysostome_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v this_o that_o antichrist_n and_o those_o pseudochriste_n judas_n galileus_n theudas_n and_o such_o other_o also_o heretic_n &_o schismatic_n as_o luther_n caluine_n &c._n &c._n can_v show_v any_o commission_n out_o of_o scripture_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n with_o the_o other_o catholic_a pastor_n that_o succeed_v they_o come_v into_o their_o cure_n by_o good_a warrant_n of_o scripture_n these_o therefore_o be_v true_a pastor_n the_o other_o be_v thief_n we_o may_v be_v as_o bold_a with_o chrysostome_n as_o he_o say_v he_o will_v be_v with_o paul_n himself_o in_o 2._o ad_fw-la tim._n hom._n 2._o plus_fw-fr aliquid_fw-la dicam_fw-la i_o will_v say_v somewhat_o more_o we_o must_v not_o be_v rule_v by_o paul_n himself_o if_o he_o speak_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v his_o own_o and_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v humane_a but_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o apostle_n when_o he_o carry_v christ_n speak_v in_o he_o and_o when_o be_v that_o when_o he_o speak_v all_o only_a by_o scripture_n will_v you_o not_o obey_v he_o then_o when_o he_o say_v ego_fw-la enim_fw-la accepi_fw-la a_o domino_fw-la for_o i_o receive_v it_o of_o our_o lord_n mouth_n 1._o cor._n 1●_n see_v in_o what_o a_o proper_a sense_n you_o use_v chrysostoms_n word_n these_o be_v the_o four_o place_n one_o other_o you_o have_v elsewhere_o say_v chrysostome_n upon_o luke_n cap._n 16._o say_v lazaro_n ar._n 12._o chrys_n con_fw-mi 3._o de_fw-fr lazaro_n that_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v breed_v heresy_n and_o bring_v in_o corrupt_a life_n yea_o it_o have_v turn_v all_o thing_n upsidedowne_v by_o which_o it_o appear_v by_o what_o mean_v he_o will_v have_v heresy_n keep_v away_o namely_o by_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o who_o will_v not_o the_o same_o it_o be_v therefore_o our_o daily_a study_n and_o we_o see_v ourselves_o and_o show_v other_o thereby_o the_o abomination_n of_o your_o heresy_n and_o how_o you_o will_v face_v they_o out_o with_o a_o card_n of_o ten_o but_o what_o make_v this_o for_o only_a scripture_n to_o be_v of_o authority_n as_o s._n chrysostome_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n s._n leo_n be_v of_o your_o side_n you_o say_v against_o we_o and_o against_o himself_o for_o where_o d._n allen_n allege_v this_o say_n of_o he_o pentecost_n pur._n 387._o leo_fw-la ser._n 2._o de_fw-la ieiunio_fw-la pentecost_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o the_o church_n by_o general_n custom_n of_o devotion_n keep_v and_o retain_v it_o come_v out_o of_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n you_o answer_v that_o the_o say_n of_o leo_n the_o great_a may_v be_v back_v with_o the_o write_n of_o leo_n the_o great_a epist_n 10._o they_o fall_v into_o this_o folly_n which_o when_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o some_o obscurity_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n have_v not_o recourse_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n nor_o to_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o to_o themselves_o in_o these_o word_n leo_n as_o great_a as_o you_o will_v have_v he_o make_v the_o scripture_n and_o not_o custom_n or_o tradition_n the_o rule_n of_o truth_n so_o you_o gather_v of_o those_o word_n as_o also_o in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v overthrow_v heresy_n 14._o ar._n 14._o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o leo_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o epist_n 10._o ad_fw-la flavianum_fw-la contra_fw-la eutichen_n plain_o confess_v he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o truth_n be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n though_o that_o be_v whereof_o he_o there_o intreat_v to_o wit_n the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n marry_o when_o a_o truth_n be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n recourse_n must_v be_v have_v to_o the_o scripture_n so_o he_o say_v but_o he_o say_v not_o to_o the_o scripture_n only_o yea_o in_o the_o very_a same_o ten_o epistle_n he_o blame_v eutiche_n the_o heretic_n much_o more_o for_o not_o have_v recourse_n neither_o so_o much_o as_o to_o our_o common_a creed_n which_o be_v not_o scripture_n you_o wot_v well_o but_o a_o tradition_n 15._o ar._n 15._o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n you_o say_v be_v not_o leo_n only_o but_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o sixth_o actione_n 18._o confess_v that_o the_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n grow_v so_o fast_o because_o they_o be_v not_o beat_v down_o by_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o confess_v the_o same_o howbeit_o the_o council_n do_v not_o but_o what_o be_v that_o for_o only_a scripture_n yea_o the_o place_n be_v plain_a for_o the_o other_o side_n i_o marvel_v you_o can_v not_o espy_v as_o much_o even_o by_o the_o piece_n that_o you_o allege_v although_o you_o see_v not_o the_o whole_a circumstance_n be_v true_o translate_v this_o it_o be_v if_o all_o man_n have_v simple_o and_o without_o calliditie_n from_o the_o beginning_n receive_v the_o gospel_n preach_v and_o be_v content_n with_o the_o apostle_n institution_n the_o matter_n very_o have_v be_v well_o a_o fine_a and_o neither_o the_o author_n of_o the_o heresy_n nor_o the_o fautor_n of_o the_o priest_n have_v be_v put_v to_o the_o pain_n of_o conflict_n who_o will_v rest_v here_o as_o you_o do_v and_o not_o imagine_v somewhat_o to_o follow_v with_o a_o but_o necessary_a to_o be_v see_v sed_fw-la quia_fw-la satanas_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o because_o the_o devil_n not_o rest_v raise_v up_o his_o squire_n therefore_o christ_n also_o in_o time_n convenient_a have_v raise_v up_o his_o warrior_n against_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o general_n counsel_n that_o to_o this_o time_n have_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v six_o in_o number_n so_o express_o they_o avouch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o you_o allege_v they_o for_o only_a scripture_n whereas_o also_o in_o the_o word_n that_o
you_o allege_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o scripture_n but_o only_o of_o preach_v and_o teach_v likewise_o s._n hillarius_n most_o express_o avouch_v every_o where_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n against_o the_o arrian_n and_o yet_o you_o pretend_v that_o he_o will_v have_v heresy_n against_o the_o trinity_n trin._n ar._n 11._o hilar._n li._n 4._o de_fw-fr trin._n to_o be_v confute_v not_o by_o man_n judgement_n but_o by_o god_n word_n you_o mark_v well_o what_o he_o do_v in_o that_o place_n how_o heresy_n must_v be_v confute_v be_v not_o his_o purpose_n but_o to_o answer_v the_o scripture_n that_o the_o heretic_n abuse_v and_o misconstrue_v which_o he_o there_o have_v recite_v at_o large_a therefore_o he_o say_v cessent_fw-la propriae_fw-la hominum_fw-la opiniones_fw-la neque_fw-la se_fw-la ultra_fw-la divinam_fw-la constitutionem_fw-la humana_fw-la iudicia_fw-la extendant_fw-la let_v man_n proper_a opinion_n cease_v neither_o let_v the_o judgement_n or_o fancy_n of_o man_n stretch_v themselves_o beyond_o god_n limit_n therefore_o against_o these_o profane_a and_o impious_a institution_n or_o catechism_n of_o god_n let_v we_o follow_v the_o selfsame_o authority_n of_o god_n say_n which_o they_o allege_v in_o their_o own_o false_a sense_n restore_v every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o his_o true_a meaning_n which_o there_o consequent_o he_o do_v a_o goodly_a testimony_n for_o your_o purpose_n the_o say_n of_o s._n basill_n be_v in_o every_o man_n mouth_n 27_o basi_fw-la de_fw-fr spi_v sanc._n ca._n 27_o that_o the_o doctrine_n preach_v in_o the_o church_n we_o have_v they_o partly_o by_o writing_n partly_o by_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n without_o write_n and_o if_o we_o go_v about_o to_o reject_v such_o unwritten_a custom_n we_o shall_v unaware_o condemn_v the_o gospel_n also_o imo_fw-la ipsam_fw-la fidei_fw-la predicationem_fw-la ad_fw-la nudum_fw-la nomen_fw-la contrahemus_fw-la yea_o we_o shall_v bring_v the_o very_o preach_v of_o our_o faith_n to_o a_o bare_a name_n and_o you_o yourself_o do_v note_v it_o as_o a_o great_a matter_n that_o by_o his_o confession_n here_o 380._o pur._n 380._o the_o word_n of_o invocation_n when_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n be_v show_v be_v not_o teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n no_o more_o than_o many_o other_o ceremony_n that_o he_o rehearse_v in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o yet_o must_v he_o also_o bear_v you_o witness_n against_o himself_o for_o only_a scripture_n moralium_fw-la ar._n 11._o basi_fw-la de_fw-la vera_fw-la side_n in_o prooem_n moralium_fw-la well_o what_o say_v he_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o faith_n we_o know_v that_o we_o must_v now_o and_o always_o avoid_v every_o word_n and_o opinion_n that_o be_v differ_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o say_v the_o same_o but_o it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o to_o be_v differ_v from_o our_o lord_n doctrine_n and_o not_o to_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o allow_v well_o of_o those_o word_n in_o speak_v of_o the_o trinity_n quae_fw-la apud_fw-la sanctos_fw-la viros_fw-la in_o usu_fw-la fuisse_fw-la reperirentur_fw-la which_o have_v be_v use_v of_o the_o holy_a father_n although_o they_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n 1._o basi_fw-la in_o regulis_fw-la breu_fw-la interrog_n 1._o two_o saying_n more_o of_o he_o you_o allege_v in_o his_o short_a definition_n to_o the_o first_o interrogation_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a or_o profitable_a for_o a_o man_n to_o permit_v unto_o himself_o to_o do_v or_o say_v any_o thing_n which_o he_o think_v to_o be_v good_a without_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o answer_v for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o what_o madness_n be_v it_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v presume_v to_o believe_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n if_o you_o see_v the_o place_n your_o malice_n pass_v the_o word_n be_v these_o quis_fw-la esse_fw-la tanta_fw-la vesania_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o can_v be_v so_o mad_a that_o he_o dare_v so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n of_o himself_o and_o it_o follow_v but_o because_o of_o those_o thing_n and_o word_n that_o be_v in_o use_n among_o we_o some_o be_v plain_o teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n some_o be_v omit_v concern_v they_o that_o be_v write_v they_o must_v precise_o be_v so_o observe_v and_o concern_v they_o that_o be_v omit_v we_o have_v this_o rule_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o other_o man_n for_o god_n commandment_n renounce_v quite_o our_o own_o will_n which_o he_o say_v because_o he_o write_v there_o to_o monk_n who_o vow_v obedience_n to_o their_o superior_n 1._o basil_n mor._n reg._n 26._o c._n 1._o again_o in_o his_o moral_n dist_n 26._o every_o word_n or_o deed_n must_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o persuasion_n of_o good_a man_n and_o the_o confusion_n of_o wicked_a man_n he_o there_o admonish_v his_o monk_n be_v student_n of_o divinity_n to_o be_v so_o perfect_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o text_n ready_a at_o every_o need_n so_o as_o christ_n have_v to_o repel_v the_o devil_n temptation_n mat._n 4._o and_o peter_n to_o answer_v the_o jew_n scoff_n act._n 2._o and_o we_o desire_v the_o same_o in_o so_o much_o as_o when_o you_o bid_v we_o cast_v all_o away_o that_o be_v not_o write_v we_o have_v this_o text_n ready_a where_o s._n paul_n bid_v we_o the_o contrary_a to_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o we_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o his_o scripture_n or_o by_o his_o word_n of_o mouth_n 2._o thes_n 2._o last_o of_o all_o we_o have_v to_o see_v what_o you_o allege_v likewise_o out_o of_o s._n augustine_n for_o your_o only_a scripture_n augustine_n augustine_n for_o you_o play_v with_o his_o nose_n also_o as_o you_o have_v do_v with_o his_o fellow_n the_o foresay_a doctor_n confess_v that_o he_o be_v for_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o such_o other_o authority_n as_o we_o stand_v upon_o and_o yet_o allege_v he_o for_o only_a scripture_n your_o confession_n i_o have_v report_v at_o large_a in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n as_o for_o example_n where_o you_o say_v augustine_n blind_o defend_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la agenda_fw-la 349._o pur._n 349._o and_o else_o where_o the_o common_a error_n of_o his_o time_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o by_o holy_a scripture_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o maintain_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o rule_n of_o only_a scripture_n in_o beat_v down_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o pelagian_o well_o then_o how_o do_v you_o show_v out_o of_o augustine_n against_o augustine_n himself_o that_o this_o be_v his_o rule_n you_o make_v your_o show_n in_o three_o part_n 383.405.368.451_o ar._n 12._o pur._n 383.405.368.451_o first_o you_o quote_v only_o without_o recital_n of_o any_o word_n eleven_o or_o twelve_o place_n out_o of_o he_o in_o which_o he_o prefer_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n before_o all_o writing_n of_o catholic_a doctor_n of_o bishop_n of_o counsel_n before_o all_o custom_n and_o tradition_n so_o you_o gather_v of_o those_o place_n but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o question_n which_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v but_o this_o whether_o nothing_o but_o scripture_n be_v of_o authority_n and_o touch_v the_o preferment_n also_o recite_v the_o word_n when_o you_o will_v and_o it_o will_v appear_v plain_o that_o he_o neither_o prefer_v the_o scripture_n otherwise_o then_o we_o do_v your_o second_o part_n be_v about_o this_o one_o question_n 12._o ar._n 12._o who_o have_v the_o true_a church_n of_o which_o question_n you_o say_v that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v the_o church_n fight_v only_o in_o the_o scripture_n read_v my_o first_o demand_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v what_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v in_o that_o question_n and_o that_o i_o will_v have_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n that_o you_o answer_v the_o scripture_n that_o he_o allege_v for_o his_o church_n and_o for_o we_o together_o and_o that_o you_o bring_v one_o text_n for_o the_o visible_a church_n perish_v after_o a_o time_n or_o vanish_v out_o of_o sight_n and_o one_o text_n that_o one_o luther_n or_o one_o caluine_n shall_v after_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n restore_v it_o again_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o al._n in_o deed_n he_o be_v content_a in_o that_o question_n to_o set_v aside_o all_o other_o authority_n so_o to_o draw_v the_o donatist_n who_o draw_v back_o all_o that_o they_o can_v stand_v upon_o other_o thing_n impertinent_a to_o try_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o nothing_o else_o be_v good_a authority_n in_o that_o question_n that_o he_o never_o say_v you_o allenge_v he_o de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d ecclesia_fw-la cap._n 2._o where_o he_o say_v and_o the_o like_a cap._n 3.5.6_o the_o question_n between_o we_o and_o
of_o god_n if_o you_o can_v you_o shall_v not_o compel_v we_o to_o tell_v you_o where_o when_o or_o how_o your_o heresy_n come_v in_o it_o chauf_v he_o that_o we_o show_v so_o plain_a a_o evidence_n against_o his_o side_n &_o he_o can_v not_o show_v the_o like_a against_o we_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o fly_v again_o to_o his_o cold_a exception_n of_o only_a scripture_n as_o though_o to_o justify_v our_o doctrine_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o so_o sensible_o be_v not_o enough_o but_o most_o ridiculous_a of_o all_o it_o be_v to_o see_v he_o come_v in_o with_o this_o exception_n where_o d._n allen_n allege_v tertullian_n for_o this_o rule_n 42_o pur._n 4_o ar._n 42_o that_o doctrine_n say_v fulke_n which_o be_v first_o agreeable_a to_o tertullia_n rule_n be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o that_o which_o be_v late_a be_v false_a but_o how_o shall_v the_o first_o doctrine_n be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherein_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n be_v teach_v praesc_fw-la tert._n 〈…〉_o praesc_fw-la tertullian_n there_o have_v a_o other_o rule_n against_o such_o heresy_n as_o presume_a inserere_fw-la se_fw-la aetati_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la to_o say_v that_o their_o founder_n live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o this_o our_o rule_n he_o give_v against_o all_o such_o as_o rise_v any_o time_n after_o as_o aerius_n luther_n caluin_n etc._n etc._n bid_v we_o then_o to_o consider_v what_o be_v teach_v &_o beléeve_v immediate_o before_o they_o arise_v for_o the_o undoubted_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o their_o late_a doctrine_n be_v falsehood_n now_o then_o how_o ridiculous_a be_v it_o for_o fulke_n to_o run_v from_o tertullia_n meaning_n &_o yet_o to_o pretend_v that_o he_o agree_v to_o tertullia_n rule_n the_o same_o rule_n with_o a_o amplification_n also_o dem._n antiq_fw-la …_o dem._n &_o in_o the_o same_o meaning_n do_v likewise_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n geve_v to_o wit_n if_o any_o novelty_n arise_v at_o any_o time_n yea_o &_o prevail_v so_o much_o afterward_o in_o process_n of_o time_n as_o to_o make_v a_o universal_a corruption_n so_o that_o almost_o no_o country_n of_o christendom_n be_v free_a from_o it_o as_o this_o merchant_n boast_v at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o most_o of_o europe_n england_n scotland_n ireland_n 〈…〉_o ar._n 3._o infra_fw-la dem._n 〈…〉_o france_n germany_n denmark_n suetia_n bohemia_n polonia_n &_o a_o great_a number_n also_o in_o spain_n &_o italy_n that_o then_o we_o look_v unto_o antiquity_n that_o be_v to_o the_o time_n before_o such_o novelty_n prevail_v &_o before_o it_o arise_v as_o what_o be_v teach_v &_o beléeve_v immediate_o before_o luther_n begin_v these_o innovation_n and_o therefore_o alike_o ridiculous_a it_o be_v that_o he_o say_v we_o refuse_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n 3●…_n pur._n 3●…_n concern_v antiquity_n so_o you_o can_v prove_v that_o it_o have_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o for_o witness_n under_o this_o antiquity_n we_o pass_v not_o for_o they_o why_o man_n the_o rule_n that_o you_o receive_v prove_v it_o the_o apostle_n i_o say_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o holy_a mass_n and_o of_o any_o other_o such_o article_n because_o it_o have_v such_o antiquity_n as_o i_o have_v now_o say_v and_o as_o vincentius_n mean_v and_o so_o much_o upon_o the_o rule_n of_o find_v out_o the_o first_o author_n of_o any_o doctrine_n and_o the_o same_o therefore_o to_o be_v heretical_a or_o not_o find_v they_o and_o the_o same_o therefore_o to_o be_v apostolical_a whither_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v that_o rule_n also_o of_o d._n allens_n that_o such_o as_o common_o by_o christian_a people_n be_v name_v heretic_n 7.8_o name_n they_o 7.8_o always_o prove_v in_o the_o end_n to_o be_v heretic_n in_o deed_n notwithstanding_o their_o crake_v of_o god_n word_n whereunto_o fulke_n exception_n be_v the_o self_n same_o again_o say_v 65._o ar._n 65._o the_o true_a christian_n at_o this_o day_n be_v of_o the_o papist_n which_o after_o a_o sort_n be_v name_v christian_n call_v heretic_n and_o in_o reproach_n protestant_n and_o caluiniste_n in_o that_o their_o faith_n agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n prove_v themselves_o in_o deed_n to_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o no_o heretic_n ij_o against_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n 362._o tradition_n dem._n 29._o pur._n 362._o now_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o he_o make_v his_o say_a exception_n also_o against_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n thus_o he_o speak_v m._n allen_n refer_v the_o institution_n of_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o who_o will_v he_o be_v afeard_a to_o lie_v when_o he_o father_v such_o a_o blasphemy_n upon_o the_o apostle_n soft_a man_n be_v good_a to_o d._n allen_n for_o their_o sake_n that_o follow_v for_o you_o yourself_o go_v forward_o in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o say_v but_o who_o be_v witness_n that_o this_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n tertullian_n cyprian_n augustine_n jeronym_n and_o a_o great_a many_o more_o this_o you_o can_v not_o and_o therefore_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o come_v in_o with_o your_o stale_a exception_n say_v but_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o i_o once_o to_o pose_v the_o papist_n i_o will_v learn_v why_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v this_o doubtless_o institution_n plain_o or_o at_o leastwise_o obscure_o set_v forth_o by_o matthew_n mark_v luke_n or_o paul_n which_o all_o have_v set_v forth_o the_o story_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v at_o all_o to_o be_v put_v in_o writing_n why_o be_v it_o disclose_v by_o tertullian_n cyprian_n 387._o pur._n 387._o augustine_n &_o c_o likewise_o in_o a_o other_o place_n if_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v appoint_v by_o the_o apostle_n commandment_n why_o be_v there_o never_o a_o word_n thereof_o in_o their_o write_n if_o i_o be_v dispose_v to_o pose_v you_o this_o question_n will_v make_v you_o claw_n your_o poll_n a_o hundred_o time_n before_o you_o can_v imagine_v any_o collourable_a answer_n for_o right_o answer_v you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o make_v in_o deed_n a_o doughty_a question_n it_o be_v as_o though_o if_o a_o christian_a can_v not_o answer_v every_o why_o of_o the_o infidel_n our_o religion_n therefore_o be_v straight_o in_o hazard_n 48._o ar._n 48._o it_o may_v trouble_v a_o wise_a man_n to_o answer_v all_o the_o question_n that_o a_o fool_n can_v propound_v you_o say_v yourself_o and_o yet_o neither_o you_o nor_o any_o other_o infidel_n shall_v ever_o find_v the_o learned_a to_o seek_v it_o be_v for_o your_o religion_n to_o be_v to_o seek_v of_o answer_n because_o it_o begin_v but_o yesterday_o and_o be_v neither_o yet_o thorough_o shape_v but_o the_o catholic_a which_o be_v the_o only_a christian_a religion_n come_v of_o god_n &_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n sithence_o continue_v have_v be_v by_o our_o forefather_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o sift_v to_o our_o hand_n that_o the_o answer_n be_v always_o ready_a afore_o the_o question_n be_v demand_v brief_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n one_o of_o our_o master_n and_o doctor_n in_o christ_n have_v teach_v we_o if_o we_o be_v pose_v about_o the_o church_n order_n in_o baptism_n to_o answer_v open_a au._n d●_n &_o open_a that_o serie_fw-la traditionis_fw-la scimus_fw-la by_o the_o course_n of_o tradition_n we_o know_v what_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v therein_o although_o they_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o for_o brevity_n sake_n so_o likewise_o be_v pose_v about_o the_o order_n of_o this_o other_o sacrament_n to_o answer_v quia_fw-la multum_fw-la erat_fw-la etc._n etc._n 6_o au._n e●_n ad_fw-la ja●_n cap._n 6_o because_o it_o be_v much_o for_o the_o apostle_n to_o signify_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o action_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n through_o all_o the_o world_n observe_v therefore_o have_v say_v somewhat_o of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n yea_o and_o as_o much_o as_o all_o the_o evangelist_n by_o and_o by_o he_o add_v and_o when_o i_o come_v cor_n 1._o cor_n i_o will_v prescribe_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o order_n vnde_fw-la intelligi_fw-la datur_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n and_o thereby_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o vary_v in_o any_o variety_n of_o usage_n be_v of_o his_o prescribe_v this_o be_v our_o answer_n and_o you_o know_v it_o partly_o before_o for_o you_o say_v i_o know_v the_o papist_n will_v fly_v to_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 3●_n pur._n 3●_n the_o rest_n i_o will_v set_v in_o order_n when_o i_o come_v and_o good_a reason_n s._n augustine_n teach_v we_o so_o to_o do_v and_o what_o say_v you_o to_o he_o for_o it_o
but_o that_o be_v so_o manifest_a to_o be_v speak_v of_o matter_n of_o external_a comeliness_n and_o not_o of_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o no_o man_n which_o understand_v what_o diatazesthai_fw-fr do_v signify_v can_v doubt_v or_o make_v any_o question_n of_o it_o be_v it_o so_o as_o you_o say_v but_o what_o have_v you_o forget_v the_o thing_n whereof_o you_o speak_v be_v it_o not_o of_o that_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o prayer_n we_o say_v be_v diatazis_n one_o of_o s._n paul_n ordination_n what_o unproper_a speech_n be_v here_o special_o s._n augustine_n say_v again_o in_o another_o place_n 3_o aug●_n ver_fw-la ●_o ser._n 3_o hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la a_o patribus_fw-la traditum_fw-la universa_fw-la obseruat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la this_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v the_o apostle_n the_o whole_a church_n observe_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o nulla_fw-la morum_fw-la diversitate_fw-la variatur_fw-la when_o they_o which_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o communion_n or_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o their_o place_n mention_v at_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o to_o mention_v that_o for_o they_o also_o it_o be_v offer_v thus_o you_o have_v a_o piece_n of_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o scripture_n contain_v not_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n for_o brevity_n sake_n and_o what_o do_v that_o or_o any_o other_o cause_n let_v other_o writer_n to_o make_v mention_n of_o such_o thing_n when_o aerius_n the_o heretic_n compel_v they_o or_o any_o other_o just_a occasion_n be_v minister_v you_o imagine_v and_o that_o deceive_v you_o as_o though_o the_o apostle_n purpose_v to_o put_v all_o in_o writing_n which_o if_o they_o have_v neither_o so_o many_o of_o they_o write_v that_o all_o be_v not_o write_v nor_o one_o of_o they_o so_o often_o will_v have_v mention_v one_o thing_n but_o as_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v principal_o to_o foreshow_v manifold_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n so_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o in_o the_o gospel_n 24._o joan._n 19_o luk._n 24._o to_o show_v christ_n even_o to_o consummatum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o impleri_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-la i_o and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o show_v christ_n church_n according_a to_o the_o old_a prediction_n begin_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o increase_v to_o the_o gentile_n yea_o and_o remove_n with_o s._n paul_n from_o jerusalem_n the_o head_n of_o the_o jew_n worthy_o reprobate_v and_o set_v in_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o the_o gentile_n by_o mercy_n elect_v and_o all_o this_o but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o birth_n of_o the_o church_n for_o consummatum_fw-la est_fw-la can_v not_o be_v tell_v by_o way_n of_o a_o story_n before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n though_o foretell_v it_o be_v the_o whole_a course_n i_o say_v of_o the_o church_n even_o to_o the_o glorious_a consummation_n thereof_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n the_o other_o book_n be_v write_v special_o against_o the_o perfidious_a jew_n and_o other_o false_a master_n of_o that_o time_n as_o likewise_o in_o every_o age_n afterward_o against_o the_o several_a heresy_n of_o each_o age_n we_o have_v the_o ecclesiastical_a i_o say_v not_o canonical_a writer_n and_o counsel_n and_o therefore_o unless_o any_o thing_n belong_v to_o each_o time_n be_v omit_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o each_o time_n no_o marvel_n at_o all_o for_o the_o omission_n of_o other_o thing_n which_o there_o be_v then_o no_o such_o occasion_n to_o express_v this_o i_o shall_v have_v reserve_v to_o a_o other_o place_n but_o that_o this_o insolent_a poser_n may_v not_o abide_v any_o delay_n 264._o pur._n 264._o now_o then_o to_o go_v forward_o with_o he_o i_o know_v say_v he_o the_o papist_n will_v answer_v that_o tradition_n be_v of_o as_o good_a credit_n as_o the_o scripture_n 11._o 1._o thes_n 2._o 2._o thes_n 2._o 1._o cor._n 11._o and_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a as_o well_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v and_o good_a reason_n for_o the_o scripture_n itself_o so_o teach_v us._n but_o why_o then_o say_v he_o do_v they_o not_o observe_v all_o thing_n that_o tertullian_n in_o the_o same_o place_n affirm_v to_o be_v tradition_n this_o why_o i_o have_v answer_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n 36_o supra_fw-la ●_o par_fw-fr 1._o d●_n pur._n 36_o moreover_o he_o say_v their_o writing_n be_v to_o we_o the_o only_a true_a testimony_n of_o their_o tradition_n so_o be_v they_o not_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o for_o they_o have_v of_o s._n paul_n traditiones_fw-la per_fw-la sermonen_fw-mi &_o per_fw-la epistolam_fw-la 40_o pur._n 40_o tradition_n partly_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n partly_o by_o write_v yea_o he_o say_v further_a when_o the_o apostolic_a writing_n can_v not_o be_v show_v it_o be_v but_o the_o point_n of_o a_o heretic_n to_o boast_v of_o apostolic_a tradition_n so_o he_o say_v to_o d._n allen._n but_o to_o the_o old_a father_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v be_v somewhat_o better_a and_o content_a to_o take_v only_o his_o exception_n against_o they_o as_o where_o he_o say_v ●_o pur._n 39_o ●_o if_o tertullian_n have_v no_o ground_n of_o his_o say_n when_o he_o affirm_v that_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a come_v from_o the_o apostle_n what_o ground_n can_v augustine_n have_v which_o be_v 200._o year_n further_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n than_o he_o again_o 39_o pur._n 39_o chrysostom_n can_v no_o more_o prove_v that_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a come_v from_o the_o apostle_n than_o tertullian_n can_v prove_v that_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a come_v from_o they_o again_o but_o where_o he_o say_v 304._o pur._n 30_o 304._o it_o be_v decree_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n a_o remembrance_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v he_o must_v pardon_v we_o of_o credit_v because_o he_o can_v not_o show_v it_o out_o of_o the_o act_n and_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o must_v not_o believe_v chrysostome_n without_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v ordain_v so_o by_o the_o apostle_n howbeit_o sometime_o he_o be_v bold_a yet_o with_o the_o father_n for_o avouch_v this_o tradition_n he_o dare_v not_o call_v they_o heretic_n for_o it_o but_o yet_o he_o dare_v to_o charge_v they_o with_o doutfulnes_n &_o contradiction_n about_o it_o for_o of_o chrysostome_n he_o say_v 3_o pur._n 39_o chrysom_n ep._n ad_fw-la ●_o hom._n 3_o lo_o m._n allen_n your_o own_o doctor_n confess_v it_o be_v but_o small_a help_n that_o can_v be_v procure_v by_o prayer_n alm_n or_o remembrance_n of_o they_o at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n you_o will_v say_v that_o soon_o after_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n that_o institute_v such_o memory_n know_v that_o much_o commodity_n come_v to_o the_o dead_a then_o see_v how_o soon_o he_o forget_v himself_o when_o he_o follow_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o again_o 39_o ar._n 39_o yet_o do_v not_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a so_o prevail_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o they_o dare_v define_v what_o profit_n the_o soul_n receive_v thereby_o for_o chrysostome_n say_v let_v we_o procure_v they_o some_o help_n small_a help_n true_o but_o yet_o let_v we_o help_v they_o likewise_o augustine_n 13._o aug._n ●_o fes_n lib._n cap._n 13._o where_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n declare_v how_o uncertain_a he_o be_v of_o the_o matter_n one_o while_o he_o fear_v the_o danger_n of_o every_o soul_n that_o die_v in_o adam_n a_o other_o while_o he_o believe_v that_o they_o need_v not_o his_o prayer_n yet_o he_o desire_v god_n to_o accept_v the_o same_o and_o move_v other_o man_n to_o remember_v they_o in_o their_o prayer_n thus_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o wander_v which_o lean_a unto_o man_n tradition_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la agenda_fw-la weari_v himself_o and_o in_o the_o end_n can_v define_v nothing_o in_o certain_a how_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o man_n on_o earth_n such_o doubtfulness_n they_o fall_v into_o that_o leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o lean_a to_o tradition_n although_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o maintain_v invocation_n of_o saint_n 317._o pur._n 317._o yet_o he_o have_v nothing_o of_o certainty_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n either_o to_o persuade_v his_o own_o conscience_n or_o to_o satisfy_v they_o that_o move_v the_o doubt_n unto_o he_o for_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr
worthiness_n of_o these_o who_o m._n allen_n so_o high_o extoll_v as_o i_o will_v not_o go_v about_o to_o diminish_v it_o if_o they_o be_v to_o be_v compare_v with_o we_o so_o when_o they_o be_v apostle_n as_o though_o we_o oppose_v the_o doctor_n to_o the_o apostle_n oppose_v against_o the_o manifest_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v carry_v away_o with_o they_o that_o which_o he_o say_v here_o as_o his_o master_n teach_v he_o of_o mortal_a man_n d._n allen_n know_v aforehand_o and_o forewarn_v the_o reader_n thereof_o where_o he_o say_v melancton_n 384._o pur._n 384._o as_o though_o he_o be_v no_o man_n that_o may_v err_v himself_o say_v the_o doctor_n be_v man_n and_o again_o to_o see_v their_o absurdity_n in_o the_o same_o term_n of_o mortal_a man_n man_n mortal_a man_n be_v comprehend_v also_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o if_o they_o sometime_o seem_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o it_o they_o mean_v then_o by_o the_o apostle_n nothing_o but_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o fulke_v in_o certain_a place_n note_v before_o and_o again_o where_o he_o say_v to_o d._n allen_n 59_o ar._n 59_o you_o shall_v never_o bring_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o s._n paul_n be_v against_o we_o in_o any_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o we_o agree_v whole_o with_o he_o nevertheless_o i_o know_v what_o you_o mean_v and_o i_o will_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o utter_v it_o for_o as_o much_o as_o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n corruption_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n you_o think_v that_o we_o dare_v not_o depend_v upon_o any_o one_o man_n judgement_n and_o therein_o you_o be_v not_o deceive_v for_o we_o must_v depend_v only_o upon_o god_n word_n even_o so_o deal_v the_o unbeléever_n and_o the_o doubtful_a and_o weak_a with_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o life_n time_n yea_o and_o with_o christ_n himself_o and_o yet_o to_o win_v such_o person_n both_o the_o apostle_n yea_o and_o christ_n himself_o condescend_v to_o they_o according_o if_o the_o protestant_n will_v in_o like_a sort_n have_v deal_v with_o he_o &_o they_o not_o to_o have_v beléeve_v they_o in_o any_o thing_n without_o scripture_n the_o faithful_a i_o think_v for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o so_o straight_o lace_v but_o beléeve_v they_o upon_o their_o own_o word_n not_o christ_n only_o but_o also_o his_o apostle_n because_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o he_o send_v to_o they_o and_o not_o to_o they_o only_o but_o also_o to_o his_o church_n after_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v also_o no_o less_o at_o all_o time_n believe_v the_o say_a church_n for_o the_o same_o spirit_n assure_v themselves_o that_o the_o say_a spirit_n agree_v still_o with_o himself_o whersoever_o and_o howsoever_o he_o speak_v be_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v it_o in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o church_n primitive_a or_o in_o the_o church_n of_o late_a time_n and_o again_o in_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n afterward_o at_o any_o time_n in_o general_a council_n or_o otherwise_o consent_v together_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n after_o this_o generality_n to_o see_v he_o now_o except_v against_o the_o father_n in_o particular_a name_v the_o time_n and_o the_o person_n 60._o ar._n 60._o as_o first_o the_o time_n where_o he_o say_v the_o other_o writer_n of_o late_a year_n after_o ireneus_fw-la and_o justinus_n we_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v some_o corruption_n whereby_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v colour_n of_o defence_n for_o invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a ●87_n pur._n ●87_n and_o diverse_a ceremony_n and_o although_o the_o custom_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v a_o ancient_a error_n so_o that_o few_o of_o the_o late_a writer_n there_o be_v but_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v infect_v therewith_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o ground_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o warrant_v their_o do_n 262._o pur._n 262._o again_o but_o of_o memory_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a also_o we_o will_v not_o strive_v but_o that_o they_o be_v use_v before_o the_o time_n of_o cyprian_a &_o ambrose_n but_o without_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n or_o authority_n of_o scripture_n but_o such_o as_o be_v pitiful_o wrest_v and_o draw_v unto_o they_o again_o 30._o pur._n 30._o but_o it_o suffice_v you_o that_o your_o forefather_n more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o call_v the_o place_n of_o sufferance_n purgatory_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o what_o be_v it_o call_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o the_o new_a diverse_a error_n be_v old_a than_o a_o 1000_o year_n but_o age_n can_v never_o make_v falsehood_n to_o be_v truth_n and_o therefore_o i_o weigh_v not_o your_o they_o your_o it_o be_v pride_n to_o follow_v the_o father_n and_o humility_n to_o condemn_v they_o proud_a brag_n worth_a a_o straw_n again_o and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a corruption_n of_o those_o ancient_a time_n that_o they_o do_v not_o always_o weigh_v what_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o the_o gentile_n or_o heretic_n have_v any_o thing_n 419._o pur._n 419._o and_o the_o rest_n as_o above_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n and_o again_o 9_o supra_fw-la pag._n 9_o those_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o agree_v with_o you_o in_o any_o part_n of_o your_o assertion_n notwithstanding_o many_o excellent_a gift_n that_o they_o have_v 436._o pur._n 436._o dissent_v therein_o from_o manifest_a truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o by_o name_n likewise_o he_o say_v of_o certain_a as_o for_o example_n damascene_fw-la your_o doctor_n shall_v first_o have_v reprove_v that_o persuasion_n by_o scripture_n again_o 60._o pur._n 412._o pur._n 60._o the_o supposal_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v set_v down_o which_o because_o it_o be_v but_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o man_n it_o be_v not_o of_o sufficient_a weight_n to_o bear_v down_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n word_n again_o 395._o pur._n 395._o and_o even_o the_o authority_n of_o athanasius_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o man_n we_o count_v not_o all_o his_o writing_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o we_o judge_v they_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o again_o 255.256_o pur._n 255.256_o gregory_n nissene_n and_o athanasius_n the_o great_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v believe_v either_o of_o they_o both_o in_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o second_o part_n be_v tell_v that_o the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v not_o as_o he_o make_v it_o of_o the_o scripture_n authority_n but_o of_o the_o meaning_n how_o there_o likewise_o against_o all_o the_o expositor_n he_o make_v the_o same_o exception_n of_o only_a scripture_n require_v also_o scripture_n to_o be_v expound_v by_o scripture_n now_o after_o all_o this_o froth_n of_o word_n let_v we_o see_v he_o come_v once_o to_o the_o point_n &_o report_v himself_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o matter_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n but_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o m._n allen_n faith_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o matter_n 363_o pur._n 363_o but_o of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o they_o which_o it_o be_v more_o like_a that_o they_o the_o doctor_n be_v such_o man_n than_o we_o so_o far_o inferior_a to_o they_o shall_v know_v and_o what_o say_v he_o thereunto_o i_o answer_v say_v he_o and_o yet_o not_o one_o word_n there_o to_o the_o question_n else_o where_o he_o say_v thereunto_o as_o i_o will_v report_v anon_o his_o word_n that_o also_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v search_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n only_o well_o sir_n but_o whencesoever_o and_o wheresoever_o it_o must_v be_v search_v who_o be_v more_o like_a to_o find_v it_o the_o doctor_n or_o you_o and_o so_o neither_o that_o which_o you_o say_v in_o other_o place_n answer_v the_o question_n but_o in_o this_o place_n read_v it_o who_o list_n your_o answer_n be_v quite_o &_o clean_o from_o the_o question_n which_o be_v whether_o be_v more_o like_a to_o know_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o doctor_n or_o you_o and_o yet_o you_o pipe_v up_o the_o triumph_n there_o and_o say_v thus_o have_v these_o heretic_n no_o ground_n of_o their_o heresy_n but_o shift_n from_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o tradition_n from_o tradition_n to_o the_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n yea_o and_o he_o count_v himself_o and_o his_o company_n happy_a for_o such_o
word_n of_o truth_n desire_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o you_o may_v understande_v and_o believe_v the_o truth_n and_o so_o without_o doubt_v you_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n so_o it_o be_v then_o good_a sir_n in_o this_o seminary_n of_o english_a divine_v under_o the_o government_n of_o d._n allen_n maintain_v by_o his_o holiness_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o country_n as_o he_o maintain_v the_o like_a for_o germany_n also_o for_o bohemia_n and_o student_n of_o polonia_n england_n the_o pope_n seminary_n for_o england_n suetia_n slavonia_n hungaria_n etc._n etc._n yea_o for_o the_o greek_n likewise_o yea_o also_o for_o the_o hebrews_n we_o have_v such_o exercise_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o we_o read_v over_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o every_o three_o year_n twelve_o time_n one_o of_o which_o time_n have_v join_v with_o it_o a_o examination_n by_o conference_n from_o chapter_n to_o chapter_n and_o from_o verse_n to_o verse_n the_o new_a testament_n we_o read_v over_o in_o the_o same_o three_o year_n sixtéene_a time_n with_o a_o treble_a examination_n of_o the_o same_o sort_n and_o not_o content_a with_o those_o examination_n we_o afterward_o write_v moreover_o in_o paper_n book_n &_o lay_v together_o all_o the_o sentence_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o controversy_n of_o this_o time_n every_o one_o in_o his_o place_n and_o without_o all_o vanity_n to_o speak_v one_o word_n of_o myself_o after_o many_o year_n study_v afore_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o england_n as_o many_o of_o your_o own_o side_n can_v bear_v i_o witness_v i_o have_v since_o then_o follow_v this_o foresay_a trade_n nine_o year_n this_o be_v partly_o our_o diligence_n in_o the_o scripture_n beside_o much_o other_o exercise_n both_o in_o the_o same_o and_o in_o all_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n what_o more_o diligence_n will_v you_o have_v we_o use_v this_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o as_o you_o make_v it_o all_o in_o all_o all_o other_o help_v you_o count_v but_o subordinate_a and_o serve_v unto_o this_o and_o yet_o in_o they_o also_o i_o dare_v say_v if_o you_o know_v we_o you_o will_v allow_v we_o for_o sufficient_a at_o the_o jest_n you_o may_v by_o the_o trace_n of_o god_n ere_o it_o be_v long_o have_v some_o taste_n of_o we_o therein_o when_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v set_v forth_o a_o book_n to_o show_v to_o the_o world_n that_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a text_n in_o nothing_o make_v for_o you_o against_o we_o and_o in_o very_a many_o thing_n make_v for_o we_o against_o you_o much_o more_o plain_o than_o our_o vulgar_a latin_a text_n now_o then_o how_o much_o more_o certain_a of_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o than_o you_o also_o by_o your_o own_o rule_n because_o your_o diligence_n herein_o be_v nothing_o comparable_a but_o special_o because_o together_o with_o this_o rule_n we_o use_v the_o exposition_n that_o you_o renounce_v of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o for_o such_o conference_n of_o place_n and_o all_o other_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v peerless_a ¶_o the_o three_o part_n what_o he_o mean_v by_o his_o only_a scripture_n and_o that_o thereby_o he_o except_v also_o against_o scripture_n itself_o thus_o have_v we_o hear_v this_o protestant_a call_n for_o express_v scripture_n in_o all_o thing_n yea_o also_o in_o the_o expound_v of_o scripture_n now_o that_o he_o seem_v not_o too_o straight_o and_o rigorous_a in_o his_o exception_n he_o will_v tell_v we_o what_o he_o mean_v thereby_o as_o it_o be_v to_o geve_v we_o more_o scope_n but_o in_o deed_n as_o we_o shall_v hear_v soon_o after_o to_o shut_v we_o straight_o up_o and_o to_o except_v also_o against_o scripture_n itself_o unless_o it_o be_v so_o plain_a and_o evident_a for_o we_o that_o by_o no_o subtlety_n of_o they_o they_o may_v avoid_v it_o concern_v the_o former_a thus_o he_o say_v when_o we_o require_v express_v scripture_n for_o every_o controversy_n we_o do_v not_o require_v that_o every_o thing_n shall_v be_v name_v in_o scripture_n but_o necessary_o conclude_v out_o of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o they_o then_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o almost_o repent_v himself_o again_o for_o grant_v so_o much_o and_o say_v and_o yet_o we_o may_v say_v 438._o pur._n 438._o it_o be_v a_o great_a prejudice_n against_o your_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o name_v in_o the_o scripture_n again_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v ever_o allow_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a he_o will_v once_o at_o the_o least_o have_v utter_v the_o same_o plain_o in_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n 452._o pur._n 452._o canonical_a he_o say_v to_o except_v against_o the_o very_a meaning_n of_o it_o also_o which_o he_o see_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o machabée_n rather_o shall_v that_o canonical_a scripture_n not_o be_v canonical_a for_o so_o plain_o name_v that_o which_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o protestant_n can_v not_o abide_v well_o in_o the_o other_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o name_n be_v not_o and_o that_o be_v a_o great_a prejudice_n against_o us._n but_o he_o will_v be_v favourable_a unto_o we_o a_o great_a prejudice_n shall_v not_o make_v he_o geve_v judgement_n against_o we_o if_o at_o least_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v teach_v or_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n yet_o again_o he_o remember_v himself_o 452._o pur._n 452._o that_o d._n allen_n have_v allege_v many_o scripture_n for_o that_o thing_n and_o the_o old_a father_n likewise_o before_o he_o and_o therefore_o to_o tie_v we_o yet_o straight_a with_o another_o exception_n he_o say_v here_o a_o little_a afore_o but_o we_o require_v that_o every_o thing_n be_v necessary_o conclude_v out_o of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o again_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o d._n allen_n see_v the_o confidence_n of_o the_o man_n he_o be_v sure_a 364._o pur._n 364._o that_o if_o we_o be_v examine_v of_o our_o conscience_n what_o trial_n of_o this_o doubt_n we_o will_v wish_v there_o be_v none_o we_o can_v name_v but_o his_o cause_n may_v well_o abide_v it_o whereunto_o he_o answer_v say_v why_o m._n allen_n we_o have_v testify_v of_o our_o conscience_n long_o ago_o that_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n write_v shall_v satisfy_v we_o as_o well_o in_o this_o as_o in_o all_o other_o matter_n if_o you_o be_v able_a we_o shall_v have_v hear_v before_o this_o time_n some_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n to_o maintain_v prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a why_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n here_o you_o confess_v that_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o he_o diverse_a sentence_n and_o not_o of_o he_o alone_o 19_o supra_fw-la pag._n 19_o but_o also_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o true_a church_n yea_o but_o now_o say_v he_o i_o add_v my_o exception_n and_o say_v therefore_o some_o sentence_n not_o stand_v upon_o voluntary_a collection_n but_o either_o in_o plain_a word_n or_o necessary_a conclusion_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o know_v nothing_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v but_o either_o in_o express_a word_n or_o in_o necessary_a collection_n which_o be_v as_o good_a as_o express_v word_n it_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n again_o 452._o pur._n 452._o all_o truth_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n either_o in_o plain_a word_n or_o by_o necessary_a conclusion_n which_o be_v all_o one_o and_o again_o 189._o pur._n 189._o there_o be_v heresy_n be_v for_o example_n your_o own_o heresy_n no_o heresy_n so_o absurd_a which_o satan_n put_v into_o the_o head_n of_o wicked_a man_n but_o it_o may_v find_v some_o sound_n of_o word_n in_o so_o many_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o by_o perverse_a wit_n may_v be_v wrest_v unto_o it_o but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o all_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n be_v plain_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o by_o manifest_a word_n or_o by_o necessary_a conclusion_n and_o argument_n which_o by_o no_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n or_o his_o instrument_n may_v be_v avoid_v or_o delude_v and_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o heresy_n and_o truth_n when_o they_o both_o appeal_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n which_o difference_n as_o it_o may_v be_v find_v in_o all_o heresy_n so_o in_o none_o more_o notable_o then_o in_o this_o error_n of_o purgatory_n consider_v what_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v allege_v rather_o allege_v against_o it_o rather_o for_o it_o &_o you_o shall_v see_v they_o can_v not_o bring_v one_o out_o of_o which_o any_o necessary_a argument_n may_v be_v frame_v to_o prove_v their_o cause_n or_o which_o have_v not_o by_o learned_a interpreter_n of_o the_o old_a time_n
only_o by_o scripture_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v thereof_o that_o no_o other_o argument_n be_v good_a enough_o against_o jew_n and_o heretic_n now_o to_o the_o place_n allege_v in_o your_o other_o book_n other_o persuasion_n say_v you_o than_o such_o as_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o hear_n of_o god_n word_n 6._o pur._n 6._o will_v never_o of_o christian_n be_v count_v for_o true_a belief_n so_o long_o as_o the_o ten_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n remain_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n s._n paul_n there_o say_v that_o hear_v be_v presuppose_v to_o beléeve_v and_o again_o to_o hear_v be_v presuppose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o in_o what_o sort_n the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o in_o write_v do_v he_o not_o there_o express_v that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o mean_v preach_v and_o preach_v of_o such_o as_o be_v send_v for_o that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o one_o place_n hear_v be_v of_o god_n word_n the_o same_o he_o say_v afore_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o preacher_n 2._o 1._o thes_n 2._o and_o what_o be_v more_o common_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n then_o to_o call_v the_o preach_n of_o god_n messenger_n the_o word_n of_o god_n even_o as_o we_o to_o this_o day_n count_v it_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o hear_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n either_o in_o her_o counsel_n or_o in_o her_o doctor_n or_o any_o other_o way_n for_o so_o say_v god_n to_o they_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o 10._o luc._n 10._o hear_v i_o and_o so_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o galathian_o if_o any_o man_n preach_v unto_o you_o any_o other_o gospel_n 1._o gal._n 1._o then_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o and_o which_o you_o have_v receive_v hold_v he_o for_o accurse_a he_o speak_v of_o preach_v and_o you_o allege_v it_o as_o speak_v of_o writing_n and_o of_o only_a writing_n for_o thus_o you_o say_v to_o we_o it_o vex_v you_o at_o the_o very_a heart_n 449.163_o pur._n 449.163_o that_o we_o require_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o confirm_v your_o doctrine_n have_v a_o plain_a commandment_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o man_n teach_v otherwise_o then_o the_o word_n of_o god_n allow_v he_o be_v to_o be_v accurse_v no_o sir_n it_o rather_o rejoice_v we_o at_o the_o heart_n to_o see_v that_o this_o very_a same_o text_n which_o you_o change_v falsification_n by_o change_v corrupt_v be_v so_o plain_a a_o warrant_n to_o our_o brethren_n the_o roman_n accurse_v your_o master_n luther_n and_o caluine_n for_o preach_v a_o other_o gospel_n 28._o act._n 28._o then_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n preach_v to_o the_o say_a roman_n and_o which_o they_o receive_v of_o he_o the_o scripture_n also_o testify_v in_o other_o place_n 15._o mat._n 28._o act._n 20._o rom._n 15._o that_o s._n paul_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n teach_v the_o roman_n and_o other_o church_n all_o thing_n but_o not_o likewise_o that_o he_o or_o they_o write_v all_o which_o they_o teach_v neither_o again_o that_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o write_v the_o church_n always_o shall_v be_v require_v to_o bring_v forth_o their_o writing_n &_o not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v credit_v although_o they_o allege_v their_o preach_n or_o tradition_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n whereby_o you_o perceive_v that_o your_o conclusion_n follow_v not_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o you_o bring_v out_o of_o another_o place_n say_v all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n 410._o pur._n 410._o it_o be_v s_n paul_n 2._o tim._n 3._o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o prepare_v to_o all_o good_a work_n suppose_v this_o to_o be_v s._n paul_n saying_n will_v you_o conclude_v thereof_o that_o timothy_n himself_o commend_v any_o thing_n for_o a_o good_a work_n and_o say_v that_o he_o have_v it_o of_o s._n paul_n own_o mouth_n where_o he_o have_v all_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v credit_v but_o needs_o he_o must_v prove_v the_o same_o by_o scripture_n we_o say_v all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n speak_v and_o that_o say_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o apostle_n write_v even_o so_o if_o all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o apostle_n write_v that_o take_v not_o away_o such_o argument_n as_o be_v make_v upon_o their_o speak_n as_o again_o if_o a_o certain_a article_n be_v confess_v to_o be_v teach_v in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n or_o also_o if_o all_o article_n for_o so_o your_o word_n pretend_v here_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n will_v it_o not_o suffice_v for_o all_o that_o to_o prove_v any_o article_n out_o of_o some_o other_o book_n of_o scripture_n what_o a_o fond_a reason_n be_v this_o that_o because_o one_o evidence_n prove_v all_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o have_v any_o other_o evidence_n but_o that_o only_a and_o this_o i_o say_v suppose_v that_o s._n paul_n have_v say_v as_o you_o make_v he_o all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n but_o now_o i_o say_v further_o that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v so_o but_o be_v now_o at_o the_o point_n of_o martyrdom_n he_o exhort_v his_o disciple_n not_o to_o faint_v but_o to_o fulfil_v his_o office_n to_o the_o end_n as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o office_n i_o say_v of_o a_o evangelist_n or_o preacher_n 4._o 2._o tim._n 4._o say_v that_o although_o he_o shall_v now_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o master_n yet_o he_o have_v still_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o he_o which_o be_v profitable_a say_v he_o to_o teach_v of_o truth_n 3._o 2._o tim._n 3._o to_o disprove_v of_o falsehood_n to_o correct_v of_o vice_n to_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o evangelist_n be_v perfect_a that_o be_v to_o say_v furnish_v to_o every_o good_a work_n mean_v thereby_o those_o foresay_a work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n as_o he_o also_o there_o have_v say_v 3._o 1._o tim._n 3._o he_o that_o desire_v a_o bishop_n office_n desire_v a_o good_a work_n now_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v profitable_a to_o this_o and_o another_o thing_n to_o be_v able_a or_o sufficient_a unto_o it_o again_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v profitable_a to_o every_o part_n of_o preach_v and_o another_o thing_n the_o scripture_n to_o teach_v express_o all_o good_a work_n in_o every_o particular_a as_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o of_o that_o you_o speak_v and_o so_o forth_o 434._o pur._n 434._o moreover_o you_o allege_v these_o two_o place_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o try_v the_o spirit_n and_o these_o you_o allege_v for_o only_a scripture_n to_o be_v require_v both_o in_o all_o question_n and_o also_o in_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n declare_v thereby_o that_o you_o either_o know_v not_o or_o care_v not_o what_o nor_o how_o you_o allege_v for_o where_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n 5._o john_n 5._o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o it_o be_v which_o bear_v witness_v of_o i_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n he_o say_v also_o unto_o they_o and_o john_n do_v bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o again_o my_o work_n blind_o who_o ever_o allege_v scripture_n more_o blind_o or_o miracle_n do_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o that_o my_o father_n send_v i_o and_o that_o a_o great_a witness_n than_o john_n and_o again_o also_o my_o father_n who_o send_v i_o he_o have_v give_v witness_n of_o i_o likewise_o upon_o your_o other_o place_n try_v the_o spirit_n you_o say_v and_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o try_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n so_o you_o say_v 4._o 1._o john_n 4._o ar._n 4._o but_o your_o text_n do_v not_o so_o say_v yea_o the_o apostle_n s_o john_n say_v there_o straight_o after_o by_o this_o we_o know_v a_o spirit_n or_o prophet_n or_o teacher_n of_o truth_n and_o a_o spirit_n of_o error_n look_v in_o the_o text_n man_n &_o see_v what_o be_v that_o whereof_o he_o say_v by_o this_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o only_a scripture_n or_o by_o some_o thing_n else_o brief_o believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n say_v he_o but_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n for_o than_o you_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o believe_v they_o by_o this_o be_v know_v a_o spirit_n of_o god_n first_o in_o one_o particular_a which_o i_o pass_v over_o then_o in_o general_a after_o this_o manner_n you_o my_o child_n you_o roman_n and_o other_o catholic_n be_v of_o god_n we_o apostle_n and_o other_o catholic_a teacher_n be_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n do_v not_o hear_v us._n by_o this_o we_o know_v a_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o a_o spirit_n of_o error_n or_o a_o false_a prophet_n
fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v reveal_v to_o s._n john_n in_o the_o twelve_o of_o the_o apocalypse_n the_o woman_n clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n which_o you_o yourself_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o church_n be_v so_o persecute_v by_o the_o dragon_n that_o she_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n there_o to_o remain_v season_n remain_v idem_fw-la etiam_fw-la ar._n xxvij_o narrow_o persecute_v of_o the_o romish_a antichrist_n for_o a_o long_a season_n a_o long_a season_n so_o far_o print_v by_o you_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o world_n to_o see_v your_o bold_a blindness_n you_o do_v so_o apply_v this_o prophecy_n only_o because_o of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n which_o yet_o be_v a_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n practise_v also_o notorious_o in_o all_o age_n as_o well_o afore_o bonifacius_n the_o three_o as_o after_o he_o which_o two_o point_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v evident_o in_o the_o seven_o book_n of_o m._n d._n saunders_n monarchy_n yea_o by_o yourself_o also_o confess_v before_o the_o say_a bonifacius_n and_o the_o church_n the_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o your_o word_n i_o report_v in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n pag._n supra_fw-la pag._n yea_o moreover_o your_o own_o self_n do_v say_v articulorum_fw-la pagina_fw-la 38_o that_o all_o nation_n never_o consent_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n for_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o other_o oriental_a church_n never_o receive_v the_o popish_a religion_n in_o many_o chief_a point_n and_o especial_o in_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n authority_n clean_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o both_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o yourself_o do_v hold_v of_o antichrist_n and_o of_o his_o universal_a exaltation_n as_o i_o shall_v lay_v your_o word_n together_o in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n amongst_o your_o other_o gross_a contradiction_n and_o therefore_o you_o can_v not_o for_o the_o pope_n authority_n so_o expound_v this_o prophecy_n as_o for_o that_o sum_n of_o money_n you_o tell_v we_o not_o what_o author_n you_o follow_v therein_o neither_o be_v the_o thing_n material_a unless_o you_o will_v condemn_v your_o own_o side_n also_o of_o antichristianisme_n for_o their_o infinite_a contribution_n to_o maintain_v these_o rebellion_n every_o where_o which_o you_o call_v your_o gospel_n but_o o_o sir_n i_o pray_v you_o i_o think_v see_v your_o goodly_a promise_n in_o the_o last_o chapter_n that_o to_o find_v out_o the_o meaning_n of_o a_o text_n of_o scripture_n you_o will_v have_v bring_v we_o nothing_o but_o scripture_n and_o so_o clear_a scripture_n that_o by_o no_o suttletie_n it_o may_v be_v avoid_v how_o be_v it_o then_o that_o now_o you_o bring_v nothing_o but_o your_o own_o conceit_n yea_o furthermore_o how_o be_v it_o that_o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o a_o text_n which_o you_o see_v not_o to_o be_v with_o you_o but_o plain_a against_o you_o you_o corrupt_v the_o text_n for_o by_o your_o opinion_n antichrist_n reign_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o church_n continue_v in_o the_o wilderness_n wilderness_n ar._n 36.79_o the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o space_n of_o 807._o year_n from_o the_o year_n .607_o the_o time_n of_o bonifacius_n the_o three_o to_o the_o year_n 1414._o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o constance_n council_n and_o of_o john_n hus_n your_o suppose_a great_a grandfather_n all_o this_o while_n you_o say_v christ_n have_v preserve_v she_o now_o to_o bring_v she_o out_o of_o her_o secret_a place_n in_o the_o wilderness_n into_o the_o open_a sight_n of_o the_o world_n again_o and_o therefore_o you_o make_v the_o text_n to_o say_v here_o before_o that_o be_v persecute_v by_o the_o dragon_n she_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n detestable_a falsification_n most_o detestable_a there_o to_o remain_v a_o long_a season_n but_o the_o text_n have_v the_o clean_a contrary_n a_o very_a short_a season_n to_o wit_n but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a these_o be_v the_o word_n true_o report_v as_o catholic_n be_v wout_z to_o do_v and_o the_o woman_n fugiebat_fw-la 12._o apoc._n 12._o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n where_o she_o have_v a_o place_n prepare_v of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v there_o feed_v she_o 1260._o day_n and_o the_o same_o again_o a_o little_a after_o and_o to_o the_o woman_n be_v give_v two_o wing_n of_o a_o great_a eagle_n ut_fw-la volaret_fw-la that_o she_o may_v fly_v whether_o this_o be_v fly_v in_o body_n as_o you_o say_v or_o in_o mind_n as_o i_o say_v into_o the_o wilderness_n unto_o her_o place_n where_o she_o be_v feed_v one_o time_n and_o two_o time_n and_o half_o a_o time_n from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o serpent_n where_o be_v now_o your_o long_a season_n your_o 807._o year_n 12._o whether_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v an._n 607._o apoc._n 12._o your_o folly_n will_v again_o be_v manifest_a if_o i_o report_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o dragon_n persecution_n because_o you_o make_v it_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o bonifacius_n an._n 607._o but_o what_o say_v the_o scripture_n first_o that_o great_a dragon_n be_v the_o old_a serpent_n call_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n the_o seducer_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o christ_n in_o consideration_n of_o his_o passion_n then_o at_o hand_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o world_n immediate_o ensue_v thereupon_o say_v of_o he_o now_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o world_n 12._o joan._n 12._o mat._n 12._o now_o shall_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n be_v expel_v and_o the_o same_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n in_o these_o most_o evident_a word_n 12._o apoc._n 12._o and_o he_o take_v the_o dragon_n and_o he_o bind_v he_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o he_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o he_o shut_v and_o seal_v upon_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v no_o more_o deceive_v the_o nation_n or_o the_o gentile_n until_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v consummate_v so_o express_o to_o confound_v you_o utter_o with_o your_o impious_a gospel_n of_o caluenisme_n who_o set_v the_o lose_n of_o the_o dragon_n the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n his_o persecution_n and_o the_o church_n desolation_n which_o all_o do_v go_v together_o at_o the_o year_n 607._o reign_v the_o time_n of_o antichristes_n reign_v it_o follow_v as_o express_o and_o after_o this_o he_o must_v be_v loose_v modico_fw-la tempore_fw-la for_o a_o little_a season_n and_o the_o same_o again_o and_o when_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v consummate_v satan_n shall_v be_v loose_v out_o of_o his_o prison_n and_o he_o shall_v go_v forth_o and_o shall_v seduce_v the_o nation_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n gog_n and_o magog_n and_o shall_v gather_v they_o unto_o battle_n who_o number_n be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o they_o ascend_v upon_o the_o latitude_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v round_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o and_o the_o city_n belove_v but_o all_o in_o vain_a and_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n for_o fire_n descend_v from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n and_o devour_v they_o and_o the_o devil_n who_o seduce_v they_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n where_o also_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v antichrist_n and_o his_o notable_a falseprophet_n shall_v be_v torment_v day_n and_o night_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o that_o which_o the_o apocalypse_n here_o call_v consummation_n consummation_n the_o consummation_n of_o the_o thousand_o year_n the_o gospel_n that_o no_o man_n be_v deceive_v call_v it_o consummationem_fw-la seculi_fw-la the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n 13._o mat._n 24._o mar._n 13._o and_o mean_v thereby_o that_o modicum_fw-la tempus_fw-la little_a season_n aforesaid_a for_o so_o the_o apostle_n ask_v our_o saviour_n what_o sign_n shall_v there_o be_v of_o thy_o come_n and_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n he_o answer_v and_o tell_v they_o of_o sundry_a thing_n which_o must_v be_v sed_fw-la nondum_fw-la est_fw-la finis_fw-la but_o the_o consummation_n notwithstanding_o be_v not_o yet_o what_o then_o marry_o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o the_o universal_a world_n for_o witness_v to_o all_o nation_n et_fw-la tunc_fw-la veniet_fw-la consummatio_fw-la and_o then_o shall_v come_v the_o consummation_n and_o in_o the_o short_a season_n of_o the_o consummation_n what_o shall_v be_v tribulatio_fw-la magna_fw-la and_o seductio_fw-la magna_fw-la so_o great_a a_o persecution_n and_o so_o great_a a_o seduce_v that_o the_o elect_a also_o will_v not_o be_v save_v but_o that_o for_o their_o sake_n breviabuntur_fw-la dies_fw-la illi_fw-la those_o day_n shall_v be_v short_a than_o any_o man_n will_v think_v it_o possible_a see_v the_o persecutor_n greatness_n only_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a statim_fw-la autem_fw-la post_fw-la tribulationem_fw-la dierum_fw-la illorum_fw-la and_o straight_o after_o the_o persecution_n of_o those_o short_a day_n there_o shall_v be_v marvellous_a alteration_n in_o the_o heaven_n
his_o first_o epistle_n tell_v he_o 3._o 1._o joh._n 3._o o_o my_o child_n let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o he_o that_o work_v justice_n be_v just_a freewill_a freewill_a you_o allege_v also_o two_o place_n against_o fréewill_a which_o again_o concern_v good_a work_n in_o general_a 450._o pur._n 450._o we_o believe_v that_o man_n after_o his_o fall_n have_v not_o freewill_n no_o not_o aptness_n of_o will_n to_o think_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a 2._o cor._n 3._o s._n paul_n word_n be_v these_o we_o be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o ourselves_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o our_o sufficiency_n be_v of_o god_n this_o do_v not_o take_v away_o from_o we_o natural_a fréewill_n nor_o natural_a aptness_n of_o will_n as_o it_o do_v not_o take_v away_o ourselves_o from_o we_o but_o only_o it_o show_v from_o whence_o we_o have_v power_n to_o do_v as_o we_o do_v in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n to_o wit_n of_o god_n gift_n and_o not_o of_o ourselves_o if_o your_o scholar_n shall_v upon_o just_a cause_n commend_v himself_o for_o write_v as_o s._n paul_n there_o commenmend_v himself_o for_o convert_n heart_n to_o god_n and_o then_o to_o avoid_v arrogancy_n shall_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o himself_o but_o of_o his_o master_n instruction_n that_o he_o can_v write_v so_o well_o the_o scholar_n for_o all_o this_o i_o trow_v have_v understanding_n and_o aptness_n to_o understand_v for_o else_o how_o can_v he_o have_v be_v teach_v to_o write_v you_o know_v the_o scripture_n liken_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o a_o teacher_n 118._o joan._n 6._o heb._n 10._o psa_fw-la 118._o and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o teach_v and_o to_o teach_v of_o our_o heart_n or_o will_n your_o other_o place_n i_o find_v pur._n 35._o how_o shall_v freewill_n be_v maintain_v if_o god_n spirit_n have_v any_o place_n that_o distribute_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o own_o will_n 1._o cor._n 12._o you_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o man_n afore_o his_o fall_n have_v fréewill_n and_o yet_o god_n spirit_n then_o also_o do_v distribute_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o now_o likewise_o after_o the_o fall_n do_v not_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o very_a same_o chapter_n give_v some_o place_n to_o man_n will_n in_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n say_n to_o the_o corinthian_n covet_v after_o the_o better_a gift_n but_o special_o after_o charity_n because_o that_o pass_v all_o those_o gift_n 14._o 1._o cor._n 12.13_o 14._o yea_o and_o faith_n and_o hope_v also_o therefore_o sectamini_fw-la labour_v all_o that_o you_o can_v for_o charity_n marry_o covet_v also_o after_o those_o gift_n to_o speak_v with_o tongue_n and_o to_o prophesy_v but_o of_o the_o two_o rather_o for_o to_o prophesy_v again_o he_o that_o speak_v with_o a_o tongue_n let_v he_o pray_v to_o interpret_v see_v how_o plain_o he_o stir_v their_o mind_n or_o will_n to_o seek_v for_o the_o gift_n that_o god_n give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n this_o deceive_v you_o that_o you_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o god_n can_v work_v his_o own_o will_n upon_o our_o will_n and_o therefore_o you_o imagine_v that_o he_o be_v not_o omnipotent_a if_o we_o have_v will_n of_o our_o own_o yes_o sir_n be_v our_o will_n never_o so_o unwilling_a he_o can_v as_o you_o may_v see_v by_o the_o conversion_n of_o s._n paul_n turn_v they_o to_o his_o own_o will_n and_o to_o the_o very_a bend_n of_o his_o own_o will_n more_o or_o less_o even_o as_o much_o as_o he_o wil._n howbeit_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o s._n paul_n there_o treat_v special_o of_o the_o gift_n call_v gratiae_n gratis_o datae_fw-la and_o not_o gratum_fw-la facientes_fw-la in_o the_o distribution_n whereof_o god_n will_v may_v and_o do_v common_o work_v without_o cooperation_n of_o man_n will_n although_o man_n will_n may_v in_o such_o also_o and_o do_v sometime_o concur_v as_o in_o they_o that_o pray_v for_o the_o gift_n to_o interpret_v tongue_n about_o good-worke_n in_o special_a i_o come_v with_o you_o now_o to_o the_o species_n of_o good-worke_n saint_n prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o first_o to_o prayer_n and_o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a i_o have_v already_o dispatch_v then_o against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n what_o have_v you_o 451._o pur._n 451._o we_o call_v not_o upon_o saint_n because_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o they_o for_o how_o shall_v we_o call_v upon_o they_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v not_o rom._n 10._o again_o 310._o pur._n 310._o touch_v ambrose_n and_o some_o other_o also_o about_o his_o time_n their_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o show_v that_o we_o can_v invocate_v none_o but_o he_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v which_o to_o all_o true_a christian_n be_v god_n only_o and_o yet_o if_o you_o remember_v since_o the_o second_o chapter_n s._n ambrose_n and_o his_o fellow_n of_o that_o time_n be_v true_a christian_n but_o i_o must_v keep_v that_o to_o your_o contradiction_n in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n 6._o heb._n 13._o eph._n 6._o and_o again_o s._n paul_n himself_o be_v i_o trow_v agreeable_a to_o his_o own_o doctrine_n who_o yet_o so_o often_o invocate_v and_o call_v upon_o the_o faithful_a beseech_v they_o to_o pray_v for_o he_o well_o then_o to_o your_o objection_n where_o be_v your_o scripture_n for_o you_o will_v not_o if_o you_o be_v a_o man_n of_o your_o word_n run_v to_o doctor_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v in_o god_n only_o and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o believe_v philem_n believe_v exo._n 14._o in_o heb._n 2._o par._n 20._o in_o heb._n philem_n in_o his_o saint_n also_o the_o scripture_n in_o your_o own_o place_n and_o in_o sundry_a other_o place_n teach_v i_o to_o believe_v also_o 3._o also_o john_n 14_o rom._n 3._o in_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n and_o namely_o in_o his_o blood_n also_o the_o créede_v of_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n teach_v i_o to_o believe_v aucorat_n believe_v ar._n 83._o epi._n in_o fine_a aucorat_n in_o the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n as_o you_o may_v see_v also_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n set_v forth_o by_o your_o own_o master_n 34._o high_a contr_n lucif_n infra_fw-la ca._n 10_o they_fw-mi 34._o beza_n and_o s._n hierome_n say_v that_o it_o be_v solenne_n the_o custom_n in_o baptism_n after_o confession_n of_o the_o trinity_n to_o ask_v credis_fw-la in_o sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la do_v thou_o believe_v in_o holy_a church_n and_o immediate_o he_o add_v in_o what_o church_n believe_v the_o arrian_n in_o the_o arrian_n church_n but_o they_o have_v not_o the_o church_n in_o our_o church_n sed_fw-la extra_fw-la hanc_fw-la baptizatus_fw-la but_o be_v baptize_v out_o of_o she_o he_o can_v not_o believe_v in_o she_o that_o he_o know_v not_o even_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o place_n that_o you_o allege_v how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o god_n his_o intent_n there_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n be_v of_o god_n whereby_o you_o perceive_v that_o s._n hierome_n remember_v the_o place_n well_o enough_o brief_o therefore_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o arrian_n church_n nor_o in_o the_o arrian_n saint_n nor_o in_o your_o church_n nor_o in_o your_o saint_n but_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o her_o saint_n because_o it_o be_v god_n and_o christ_n his_o church_n god_n &_o christ_n his_o saint_n and_o so_o we_o do_v not_o invocate_v arius_n nor_o hus_n nor_o luther_n nor_o caluine_n nor_o any_o other_o falsenamed_a saint_n of_o heretic_n but_o after_o god_n we_o invocate_v christ_n the_o man_n our_o lord_n and_o his_o most_o glorious_a mother_n our_o lady_n and_o s._n peter_n s._n paul_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o catholic_a saint_n both_o beléeve_v in_o god_n in_o christ_n in_o his_o saint_n and_o also_o invocate_a god_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n not_o all_o alike_o but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o degree_n the_o degree_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v so_o far_o different_a from_o the_o degree_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v incomparable_a you_o deceive_v yourself_o with_o this_o distinction_n credo_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la credo_fw-la deo_fw-la credo_fw-la deum_fw-la i_o believe_v in_o god_n i_o believe_v to_o god_n 12._o aug._n in_o io._n tr_fw-la 29._o theoph._n in_o io._n 12._o i_o believe_v god_n have_v hear_v that_o some_o author_n do_v in_o a_o certain_a sense_n make_v it_o be_v god_n alone_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v and_o not_o know_v that_o other_o author_n &_o also_o the_o scripture_n will_v in_o another_o sense_n have_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o such_o as_o be_v of_o god_n as_o of_o
of_o his_o fellow_n member_n here_o on_o earth_n and_o why_o be_v he_o not_o of_o charity_n bind_v as_o well_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o if_o he_o be_v why_o be_v not_o those_o member_n in_o heaven_n as_o well_o or_o have_v not_o they_o also_o receive_v of_o god_n some_o gift_n if_o they_o have_v why_o be_v not_o they_o of_o charity_n bind_v as_o well_o or_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n say_v plain_o the_o christ_n friend_n in_o heaven_n do_v rejoice_v with_o his_o penitentes_fw-la in_o earth_n how_o then_o can_v you_o pretend_v 15._o luc._n 15._o as_o though_o the_o mutual_a office_n of_o love_n whereby_o one_o member_n have_v compassion_n with_o another_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n touch_v the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o the_o state_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n now_o the_o state_n also_o of_o some_o that_o be_v dead_a be_v not_o they_o also_o among_o christ_n friend_n in_o heaven_n so_o much_o you_o say_v touch_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a here_o on_o earth_n for_o you_o have_v another_o beside_o it_o which_o you_o call_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n &_o that_o you_o make_v to_o be_v the_o participation_n of_o life_n from_o christ_n the_o head_n if_o that_o be_v all_o then_o be_v there_o no_o communion_n for_o what_o communion_n be_v it_o between_o the_o member_n of_o your_o natural_a body_n if_o they_o do_v only_o receive_v life_n from_o your_o head_n and_o can_v not_o use_v their_o say_a life_n to_o profit_v one_o another_o but_o live_v every_o one_o to_o himself_o alone_o how_o much_o better_o have_v you_o be_v to_o follow_v d._n allens_n most_o proper_a and_o true_a description_n of_o it_o then_o to_o utter_v thus_o you_o know_v not_o what_o at_o the_o least_z if_o you_o can_v not_o correct_v he_o yet_o you_o can_v belie_v he_o as_o to_o say_v that_o he_o will_v have_v other_o work_n and_o way_n of_o salvation_n beside_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v that_o in_o this_o communion_n all_o work_n and_o all_o way_n of_o salvation_n be_v common_a to_o the_o whole_a body_n &_o all_o ground_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o any_o beside_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v not_o yea_o it_o be_v clean_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o he_o say_v ¶_o the_o .13_o chapter_n or_o conclusion_n that_o in_o his_o two_o writing_n against_o d._n allen_n there_o be_v yet_o stuff_n enough_o to_o make_v another_o book_n as_o big_a as_o this_o to_o the_o further_a discredit_n of_o his_o party_n thus_o at_o the_o length_n with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n i_o be_o come_v to_o the_o end_n and_o yet_o the_o reader_n must_v understande_v that_o i_o find_v in_o this_o man_n such_o store_n of_o this_o stuff_n as_o will_v suffice_v to_o make_v another_o volume_n as_o big_a as_o this_o partly_o by_o enlarge_n these_o two_o last_o chapter_n with_o many_o more_o of_o his_o like_a contradiction_n &_o error_n or_o ignorances_n for_o all_o the_o former_a chapter_n be_v full_o freyt_v partly_o by_o make_v many_o new_a chapter_n upon_o new_a matter_n as_o one_o to_o show_v how_o he_o behave_v himself_o in_o all_o place_n where_o he_o charge_v either_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n or_o d._n allen_n himself_o with_o contradiction_n another_o to_o lay_v together_o all_o his_o falsification_n of_o the_o scripture_n doctor_n and_o d._n allen_n by_o add_v diminish_v or_o change_v their_o word_n another_o of_o his_o most_o impudent_a face_n lie_v without_o any_o colour_n of_o truth_n another_o of_o his_o detestable_a railing_n not_o only_o at_o d._n allen_n but_o also_o at_o the_o old_a doctor_n and_o at_o rome_n and_o at_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o he_o can_v not_o avoid_v the_o scripture_n with_o his_o own_o confession_n be_v so_o plain_a for_o it_o but_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n his_o own_o mother_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n another_o of_o his_o ridiculous_a answer_n to_o many_o of_o d._n allens_n demand_n sometime_o like_o he_o that_o answer_v a_o pokefull_a of_o plume_n when_o he_o be_v demand_v the_o way_n to_o london_n sometime_o to_o answer_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o question_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o diverse_a other_o chapter_n yet_o of_o purgatory_n about_o his_o answer_n to_o d._n allens_n allegation_n to_o see_v whether_o he_o have_v so_o answer_v they_o as_o i_o have_v here_o answer_v all_o his_o allegation_n against_o it_o yea_o &_o against_o any_o other_o article_n of_o we_o one_o of_o those_o chapter_n may_v be_v to_o gather_v all_o the_o scripture_n allege_v by_o d._n allen_n &_o the_o ancient_a father_n before_o he_o and_o fulke_n answer_n unto_o they_o with_o my_o reply_n which_o be_v e_z disperse_v in_o this_o book_n like_v as_o in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n i_o have_v gather_v all_o fulke_n scripture_n &_o answer_v they_o another_o of_o such_o book_n in_o antiquity_n as_o he_o deny_v namely_o the_o work_n of_o s._n dionysius_n areopagita_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostles_n by_o s._n clement_n because_o he_o can_v not_o otherwise_o avoid_v their_o plain_a testimony_n for_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a they_o also_o live_v even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o familiar_o with_o the_o apostle_n of_o which_o book_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v such_o probation_n as_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v answer_v read_v the_o preface_n of_o fr._n turrianus_n in_o his_o new_a edition_n of_o those_o constitution_n and_o the_o preface_n of_o mat._n galenus_n ad_fw-la areopagitica_n 5._o cop._n dial._n 2._o ca._n 5._o as_o also_o the_o preface_n and_o scholies_n in_o the_o greek_a edition_n by_o morelius_n at_o paris_n anno._n 1562._o in_o another_o chapter_n i_o may_v show_v how_o vain_o he_o labour_v to_o answer_v certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o other_o doctor_n consider_v that_o he_o grant_v other_o testimony_n of_o the_o very_a same_o doctor_n they_o self_n or_o of_o their_o several_a time_n to_o be_v so_o evident_a for_o it_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v answer_v for_o which_o cause_n also_o he_o pass_v by_o many_o of_o they_o with_o silence_n as_o that_o s._n augustine_n in_o one_o place_n pray_v for_o his_o mother_n soul_n and_o yet_o to_o stand_v with_o d._n allen_n about_o other_o place_n of_o he_o that_o they_o prove_v it_o not_o as_o though_o doctor_n opinion_n and_o judgement_n be_v confess_v there_o need_v any_o more_o to_o do_v to_o be_v make_v about_o his_o say_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v nothing_o also_o which_o he_o answer_v to_o those_o other_o place_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o very_a many_o of_o they_o another_o may_v be_v to_o lay_v together_o all_o d._n allens_n argument_n or_o reason_n for_o it_o with_o my_o reply_n to_o fulke_n answer_n such_o as_o i_o have_v make_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o this_o book_n in_o another_o i_o can_v show_v that_o fulke_n have_v make_v no_o answer_n light_o to_o these_o scripture_n doctor_n or_o reason_n but_o d._n allen_n do_v foresee_v it_o afore_o hand_n warn_v the_o reader_n of_o it_o and_o make_v so_o just_a a_o reply_n unto_o it_o as_o stand_v still_o upright_o even_o after_o that_o fulke_n have_v do_v the_o worst_a he_o can_v another_o may_v be_v to_o show_v out_o of_o justinus_n martyr_n ireneus_fw-la and_o clement_n alexandrinus_n in_o how_o many_o thing_n they_o also_o make_v with_o we_o most_o evident_o as_o in_o nothing_o against_o we_o because_o he_o do_v so_o often_o require_v we_o to_o prove_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a by_o any_o of_o they_o as_o though_o he_o will_v yield_v to_o they_o although_o he_o will_v not_o to_o their_o fellow_n whereas_o in_o deed_n he_o except_v against_o they_o no_o less_o as_o i_o have_v show_v then_o against_o the_o rest_n another_o may_v be_v by_o occasion_n of_o his_o zeal_n for_o caluine_n luther_n and_o such_o other_o his_o master_n and_o fellow_n to_o show_v more_o copious_o that_o they_o be_v worthy_o charge_v not_o only_o with_o those_o shameful_a opinion_n by_o d._n allen_n but_o also_o that_o they_o may_v be_v likewise_o charge_v with_o very_a many_o more_o no_o less_o yea_o and_o much_o more_o shameful_a than_o those_o these_o matter_n be_v such_o as_o be_v so_o handle_v will_v work_v the_o further_a discredit_n of_o fulke_n and_o of_o his_o side_n and_o yet_o be_v no_o more_o handle_v then_o already_o do_v leave_v no_o blot_n in_o our_o side_n no_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o in_o d._n allen_n particular_o for_o which_o cause_n i_o mind_n not_o neither_o hereafter_o to_o prosecute_v they_o unless_o i_o have_v great_a occasion_n give_v then_o yet_o i_o see_v but_o present_o i_o omit_v they_o to_o avoid_v more_o prolixity_n and_o special_o because_o in_o this_o book_n i_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o defend_v not_o d._n allen_n but_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o
doctrine_n against_o your_o receive_a error_n be_v account_v of_o the_o world_n so_o he_o term_v they_o who_o he_o himself_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o heretic_n but_o you_o must_v prove_v that_o their_o opinion_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o all_o your_o labour_n be_v in_o vain_a 10._o supra_fw-la pag._n 10._o and_o for_o example_n more_o store_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v here_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n i_o will_v not_o dissemble_v say_v he_o aërius_n teach_v that_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v unprofitable_a as_o witness_v both_o epiphanius_n and_o augustinus_n which_o they_o account_v for_o a_o error_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o reprove_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n 416._o pur._n 416._o and_o the_o same_o again_o in_o another_o place_n now_o at_o the_o length_n come_v the_o author_n of_o this_o heresy_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o epiphanius_n and_o augustine_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o confute_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n 426._o pur._n 426._o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n thus_o bold_o for_o our_o part_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o we_o know_v god_n in_o his_o holy_a word_n to_o be_v the_o first_o founder_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o lie_v blasphemous_o which_o will_v make_v any_o heretic_n the_o author_n of_o it_o and_o thereupon_o he_o conclude_v forsooth_o with_o great_a honesty_n say_v wherefore_o 44._o ar._n 44._o if_o aërius_n have_v not_o be_v a_o arrian_n this_o opinion_n can_v not_o have_v make_v he_o a_o heretic_n where_o to_o pass_v that_o blasphemy_n only_o this_o i_o say_v epilogo_fw-la august_n ad_fw-la quoduu_fw-la in_o praef_n &_o in_o epilogo_fw-la that_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o know_v the_o purpose_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o that_o book_n de_fw-fr haeresibus_fw-la ad_fw-la quoduultdeum_fw-la which_o he_o say_v be_v likewise_o the_o purpose_n of_o epiphanius_n not_o to_o confute_v but_o only_o to_o report_v the_o heresy_n that_o have_v be_v before_o his_o time_n and_o that_o not_o without_o great_a profit_n to_o the_o reader_n cum_fw-la scire_fw-la sufficiat_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o it_o be_v enough_o only_a to_o know_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n judgement_n be_v against_o these_o and_o that_o no_o man_n must_v receive_v into_o his_o belief_n any_o one_o of_o these_o and_o again_o multum_fw-la adiwat_fw-la cor_fw-la fidele_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o great_o help_v the_o faithful_a heart_n only_o to_o know_v what_o must_v not_o be_v believe_v although_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o confute_v it_o by_o dispute_v loe_o then_o you_o faithful_a heart_n the_o case_n be_v so_o clear_a fulke●_n note_v ●_o seek_v th●_n this_o con●_n of_o fulke●_n that_o the_o very_a adversary_n confess_v both_o that_o the_o same_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o also_o that_o it_o judge_v aerius_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n help_v yourselves_o therefore_o and_o make_v your_o profit_n of_o this_o confession_n assure_v yourselves_o upon_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n lesson_n that_o see_v the_o church_n be_v against_o aerius_n the_o scripture_n can_v not_o be_v with_o he_o because_o one_o spirit_n of_o truth_n speak_v both_o in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o scripture_n as_o for_o fulke_n and_o all_o that_o he_o here_o say_v you_o see_v it_o be_v no_o other_o than_o if_o aerius_n jovinianus_n or_o vigilantius_n have_v say_v unto_o you_o ask_v my_o fellow_n whether_o i_o be_v a_o thief_n nought_o else_o it_o be_v that_o he_o there_o again_o conclude_v for_o those_o three_o heresiarke_n say_v thus_o 4●_n ar_n 4●_n you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o name_v any_o which_o preach_v any_o article_n of_o our_o doctrine_n but_o the_o same_o be_v consonant_a to_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o same_o sort_n also_o in_o a_o other_o place_n therefore_o m._n allen_n or_o 3●_n pur._n 3●_n s._n augustine_n rather_o if_o you_o will_v teach_v your_o scholar_n to_o keep_v we_o at_o the_o bay_n as_o heretic_n you_o must_v not_o teach_v they_o to_o bark_n and_o bawl_v nothing_o but_o the_o church_n the_o church_n like_o tinker_n cur_n church_n o_o wor●_n stimatio●_n he_o have_v church_n but_o you_o must_v instruct_v they_o to_o open_v cunning_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n how_o our_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o you_o agreeable_a to_o the_o same_o again_o like_o one_o that_o will_v appoint_v his_o enemy_n not_o to_o invade_v he_o with_o a_o gun_n because_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o save_v himself_o from_o the_o shot_n of_o it_o but_o to_o take_v some_o other_o weapon_n &_o that_o of_o his_o make_n in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v and_o especial_o in_o this_o controversy_n 12_o pur._n 12_o where_o either_o party_n charge_v other_o with_o heresy_n howbeit_o i_o trow_v his_o party_n charge_v not_o so_o s._n epiphanius_n &_o s._n augustine_n though_o they_o so_o charge_v his_o patriarch_n aerius_n it_o have_v be_v convenient_a that_o the_o right_a definition_n or_o description_n of_o a_o heretic_n have_v be_v first_o set_v down_o that_o man_n may_v thereby_o have_v learn_v who_o be_v just_o to_o be_v burden_v with_o that_o crime_n for_o a_o heretic_n be_v he_o that_o in_o the_o church_n obstinate_o maintain_v a_o opinion_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o if_o any_o of_o we_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o do_v then_o let_v we_o not_o be_v spare_v infra_fw-la a_o her●_n a_o man_n in_o church_n 〈◊〉_d fulk_n f●_n a_o nobis_fw-la 〈◊〉_d john_n infra_fw-la but_o condemn_v for_o heretic_n in_o deed_n if_o a_o heretic_n be_v a_o man_n in_o the_o church_n you_o be_v cockesure_n and_o not_o only_o you_o and_o aerius_n but_o arrius_n pelagius_n &_o all_o other_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v &_o we_o rather_o with_o s._n augustine_n s._n epiphanius_n and_o such_o other_o in_o danger_n to_o this_o place_n it_o belong_v that_o again_o he_o say_v 402._o pur._n 402._o m._n allen_n give_v a_o special_a note_n that_o we_o name_v not_o jovinian_a or_o vigilantius_n the_o plain_a avoucher_n of_o our_o opinion_n but_o rather_o labour_v to_o writhe_v with_o plain_a injury_n to_o the_o author_n some_o sentence_n out_o of_o augustine_n or_o ambrose_n or_o some_o other_o that_o open_v themselves_o to_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a and_o think_v we_o be_v ashamed_a of_o the_o other_o in_o deed_n if_o we_o depend_v upon_o any_o man_n authority_n or_o that_o any_o man_n or_o man_n be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o shall_v be_v injurious_a unto_o they_o if_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v our_o founder_n but_o see_v god_n himself_o be_v the_o father_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o we_o have_v receyve_v by_o his_o holy_a word_n we_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o vigilantius_n nor_o berengarius_fw-la when_o they_o agree_v therewith_o only_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n by_o which_o we_o judge_v of_o all_o man_n and_o their_o write_n of_o all_o doctrine_n and_o the_o teacher_n thereof_o 409._o pur._n 409._o again_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o vain_a brag_n that_o you_o promise_v to_o seek_v out_o other_o father_n of_o our_o persuasion_n than_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n by_o who_o holy_a write_n we_o never_o refuse_v to_o be_v judge_v for_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a high_a way_n to_o the_o truth_n with_o the_o guidance_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o again_o you_o spend_v many_o word_n in_o vain_a 412._o pur._n 412._o to_o pro●e_v that_o the_o first_o author_n of_o a_o opinion_n be_v find_v the_o opinion_n be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o heresy_n it_o shall_v be_v grant_v with_o all_o favour_n but_o so_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v count_v the_o first_o author_n of_o a_o opinion_n that_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v his_o opinion_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o withal_o that_o whosoever_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n any_o opinion_n that_o he_o hold_v obstinate_o though_o he_o have_v many_o author_n before_o he_o yet_o he_o be_v nevertheless_o a_o v._n though_o i●_n be_v s._n augustine_n himself_o &_o though_o he_o hold_v the_o foundation_n here_o cap._n v._n heretic_n and_o so_o much_o of_o their_o first_o author_n find_v out_o by_o we_o as_o aerius_n jovinianus_n vigilantius_n and_o such_o other_o old_a heresiarche_n condemn_v he_o confess_v by_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o contrary_a he_o say_v to_o the_o scripture_n of_o christ_n now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v urge_v by_o d._n allen_n to_o find_v in_o like_a manner_n our_o first_o author_n or_o else_o it_o will_v follow_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v our_o author_n 391._o pur._n 391._o hear_v what_o he_o say_v thereunto_o must_v we_o find_v out_o the_o author_n of_o your_o heresy_n nay_o justify_v they_o yourselves_o by_o the_o word_n
to_o wit_n by_o consider_v whether_o he_o agree_v with_o they_o that_o be_v of_o god_n with_o they_o that_o receive_v and_o keep_v the_o unction_n or_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v send_v to_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o with_o they_o that_o depart_v not_o after_o any_o seducer_n but_o continue_v in_o that_o which_o they_o hear_v in_o the_o beginning_n as_o the_o roman_n do_v most_o manifest_o no_o antichrist_n nor_o heretic_n be_v able_a to_o name_v the_o time_n the_o novelty_n the_o seducer_n that_o ever_o they_o go_v after_o so_o as_o wittenberg_n geneva_n england_n and_o all_o other_o that_o we_o charge_v with_o it_o have_v do_v most_o notorious_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n in_o general_a of_o s._n johns_n epistle_n again_o you_o allege_v and_o say_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o light_n unto_o our_o step_n and_o a_o lantern_n unto_o our_o foot_n 118.18_o pur._n 285.364_o psal_n 118.18_o therefore_o we_o will_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o man_n tradition_n item_n the_o faithful_a testimony_n of_o god_n word_n only_o give_v true_a light_n unto_o the_o eye_n as_o the_o prophet_n say_v and_o by_o and_o by_o after_o you_o call_v it_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n write_v but_o the_o prophet_n neither_o have_v the_o word_n only_o neither_o say_v that_o god_n word_n be_v not_o but_o in_o writing_n but_o rather_o most_o evident_o by_o god_n word_n there_o he_o mean_v the_o preach_n of_o his_o apostle_n 10._o rom._n 10._o s._n paul_n also_o himself_o refer_v that_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o psalm_n unto_o they_o according_o into_o all_o the_o earth_n their_o sound_n be_v go_v forth_o and_o their_o word_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o you_o may_v see_v the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n to_o be_v not_o only_o in_o writing_n but_o also_o in_o tradition_n by_o mouth_n 210._o pur._n 210._o last_o of_o all_o you_o allege_v and_o say_v against_o judas_n machabeus_n in_o the_o law_n not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o pin_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v omit_v lest_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n to_o devise_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n 32._o deut._n 12._o for_o 8._o &_o 32._o you_o shall_v not_o do_v say_v the_o lord_n what_o seem_v good_a in_o your_o own_o eye_n but_o that_o which_o i_o command_v you_o that_o only_o shall_v you_o do_v without_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o it_o or_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n from_o it_o you_o be_v very_o dainty_a of_o your_o quotation_n in_o manner_n none_o at_o all_o in_o your_o margin_n because_o you_o allege_v so_o few_o place_n and_o common_o omit_v in_o your_o text_n also_o because_o you_o allege_v your_o place_n without_o book_n this_o be_v my_o conjecture_n let_v the_o reader_n look_v in_o the_o place_n as_o i_o do_v quote_v they_o because_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o omit_v many_o thing_n that_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n well_o in_o this_o place_n moses_n say_v not_o that_o only_o which_o i_o do_v write_v but_z that_o only_o which_o i_o command_v you_o and_o so_o our_o saviour_n say_v long_o after_o to_o the_o jew_n according_o 23._o mat._n 23._o the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o command_v you_o observe_v it_o and_o do_v it_o as_o for_o the_o pin_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n they_o be_v so_o mention_v for_o other_o cause_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o doctor_n commentary_n and_o not_o for_o the_o cause_n that_o you_o imagine_v that_o be_v to_o leave_v nothing_o to_o any_o man_n afterward_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o how_o say_v you_o then_o by_o david_n and_o solomon_n who_o change_v not_o only_o a_o pin_n yea_o all_o the_o pin_n but_o also_o that_o whole_a tabernacle_n build_v in_o steed_n of_o it_o a_o temple_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o there_o ordain_v musical_a instrument_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n that_o the_o law_n do_v not_o mention_v you_o always_o err_v because_o you_o do_v not_o distinguish_v between_o man_n that_o have_v only_o their_o own_o humane_a spirit_n and_o man_n that_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o moses_n the_o prophet_n the_o apostle_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o so_o have_v answer_v all_o your_o place_n i_o will_v your_o unlearned_a brother_n to_o know_v of_o it_o he_o that_o every_o year_n send_v out_o the_o newyere_n gift_n and_o what_o else_o i_o know_v not_o and_o to_o tell_v i_o now_o why_o i_o may_v not_o in_o my_o last_o motive_n call_v this_o your_o castle_n of_o only_a scripture_n scripture_n only_o scripture_n your_o weak_a and_o false_a castle_n weak_a because_o you_o have_v no_o defence_n at_o all_o for_o it_o neither_o of_o srripture_n as_o i_o have_v here_o declare_v neither_o of_o doctor_n as_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n i_o will_v declare_v false_a because_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o genesis_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n make_v for_o you_o in_o any_o thing_n nor_o against_o we_o in_o any_o thing_n as_o in_o this_o chapter_n i_o do_v enough_o to_o persuade_v therein_o any_o reasonable_a man_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o a_o false_a sleight_n of_o you_o heretic_n and_o a_o mere_a deception_n of_o the_o simple_a when_o you_o be_v overthrow_v by_o apostolic_a tradition_n by_o ancient_a father_n and_o so_o by_o many_o other_o our_o weapon_n in_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n yourself_o have_v confess_v to_o set_v a_o bold_a face_n upon_o it_o and_o vaunt_v that_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v plainelye_o for_o you_o and_o plain_o against_o us._n in_o which_o boldness_n your_o impudency_n cry_v even_o to_o heaven_n when_o you_o dare_v yet_o vaunt_v thereof_o so_o far_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v fain_o therefore_o to_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v they_o to_o make_v so_o plain_o for_o you_o when_o you_o here_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n and_o your_o master_n and_o scholefelowe_n common_o in_o their_o write_n fear_v not_o to_o open_v your_o mouth_n thus_o against_o god_n holy_a tabernacle_n in_o earth_n i_o that_o be_o nothing_o and_o in_o very_a deed_n nothing_o and_o less_o than_o nothing_o may_v not_o disdain_v the_o like_a open_n at_o i_o by_o the_o foresay_a unlearned_a but_o content_v i_o with_o my_o own_o conscience_n and_o the_o conscience_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o his_o angel_n and_o all_o his_o servant_n that_o know_v i_o by_o my_o person_n or_o by_o my_o writing_n be_v most_o certain_a how_o always_o in_o heart_n and_o word_n i_o have_v honour_v the_o most_o holy_a scripture_n even_o as_o god_n own_o lively_a and_o infallible_a word_n i_o submit_v myself_o with_o david_n in_o a_o humble_a and_o contrite_a heart_n to_o all_o that_o semei_n have_v or_o shall_v utter_v against_o i_o if_o peradventure_o my_o lord_n god_n most_o merciful_a will_v accept_v it_o to_o forgevenes_n of_o my_o manifold_a and_o heinous_a sin_n desire_v of_o he_o no_o other_o revenge_n but_o the_o party_n conversion_n and_o reconciliation_n to_o he_o and_o his_o sweet_a spouse_n my_o lief_o mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o so_o much_o in_o this_o place_n to_o that_o man_n in_o which_o place_n you_o also_o fellow_n fulke_n negatiuè_fw-fr arg._n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr may_v be_v admonish_v to_o look_v better_o to_o your_o logic_n concern_v your_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr that_o you_o oppose_v it_o no_o more_o to_o our_o so_o many_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la affirmatiuè_fw-fr i_o give_v you_o a_o little_a before_o two_o cause_n thereof_o consider_v they_o well_o i_o pray_v you_o all_o knowledge_n that_o christian_a man_n have_v of_o heavenly_a thing_n you_o say_v 449._o pur._n 449._o to_o maintain_v your_o argument_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n mean_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o as_o it_o be_v no_o good_a logic_n to_o conclude_v negative_o of_o one_o place_n or_o book_n of_o scripture_n this_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o it_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a so_o of_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o god_n wherein_o all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v contain_v the_o argument_n be_v most_o invincible_a that_o conclude_v negative_o thus_o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n purgatory_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o purgatory_n be_v no_o true_a doctrine_n let_v purgatory_n alone_o till_o anon_o there_o be_v two_o fault_n i_o say_v in_o this_o reason_n one_o because_o the_o mayor_n be_v false_a as_o to_o all_o your_o text_n allege_v for_o it_o i_o have_v answer_v the_o other_o because_o although_o the_o mayor_n be_v true_a yet_o can_v not_o the_o argument_n be_v
oppose_v to_o our_o argument_n as_o you_o oppose_v it_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n you_o may_v if_o the_o mayor_n be_v true_a labour_n to_o the_o purpose_n i_o grant_v in_o prove_v the_o minor_n but_o you_o may_v not_o i_o say_v for_o all_o that_o make_v of_o it_o a_o opposition_n or_o exception_n when_o we_o make_v argument_n out_o of_o tradition_n counsel_n father_n etc._n etc._n as_o in_o the_o like_a i_o show_v unto_o you_o i_o prove_v a_o doctrine_n unto_o you_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n you_o oppose_v thereunto_o your_o negative_a argument_n and_o say_v to_o i_o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o so_o you_o do_v hold_v and_o must_v hold_v that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n therefore_o that_o doctrine_n be_v no_o true_a doctrine_n be_v this_o well_o oppose_v of_o you_o may_v not_o i_o say_v to_o you_o notwithstanding_o yea_o sir_n but_o for_o all_o that_o what_o say_v you_o to_o my_o place_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n unless_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o old_a testament_n itself_o even_o so_o unless_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n direct_o against_o tradition_n themselves_o counsel_n father_n and_o such_o other_o our_o argument_n do_v prevail_v and_o you_o in_o vain_a do_v flee_v to_o only_a scripture_n although_o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o scripture_n now_o to_o the_o second_o question_n concern_v the_o church_n ¶_o the_o second_o part_n concern_v the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n about_o the_o church_n his_o contradiction_n be_v very_o many_o and_o very_o palpable_a as_o i_o will_v declare_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n here_o i_o have_v to_o examine_v what_o he_o allege_v first_o indefinite_o that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v that_o it_o may_v be_v divorce_v that_o it_o be_v a_o base_a and_o contemptible_a company_n that_o it_o may_v and_o also_o shall_v become_v invisible_a and_o then_o by_o name_n that_o the_o protestant_n have_v the_o true_a church_n or_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v it_o not_o j_o of_o the_o church_n indefinite_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v he_o allege_v and_o say_v according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o scripture_n every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n 86._o ar._n 86._o wherefore_o the_o whole_a church_n militant_a consist_v of_o man_n which_o be_v all_o liar_n may_v err_v altogether_o why_o do_v you_o say_v the_o church_n militant_a do_v not_o the_o church_n triumphant_a also_o consist_v of_o man_n if_o therefore_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n why_o may_v not_o they_o also_o err_v no_o doubt_n because_o although_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n of_o themselves_o yet_o some_o man_n may_v notwithstanding_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v verace_n true_a and_o so_o where_o you_o conclude_v thus_o upon_o we_o god_n only_o be_v not_o true_a 451._o pur._n 451._o for_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o err_v you_o may_v conclude_v aswell_o god_n only_o be_v not_o true_a for_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o err_v again_o you_o allege_v and_o say_v the_o true_a and_o only_a church_n of_o god_n have_v no_o such_o privilege_n grant_v 88_o ar._n 88_o but_o that_o she_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o some_o thing_n for_o her_o knowledge_n be_v unperfect_a &_o her_o prophesy_v be_v unperfect_a 1._o cor._n 13._o where_o you_o her_z s._n paul_n say_v our_o include_v himself_o also_o in_o that_o speech_n exit_fw-la parte_fw-la enim_fw-la cognoscimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o our_o knowledge_n be_v unperfect_a and_o our_o prophesy_v be_v unperfect_a so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n whether_o we_o speak_v or_o write_v and_o yet_o you_o will_v not_o say_v i_o trow_v that_o s._n paul_n therefore_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o his_o writing_n and_o epistle_n so_o then_o the_o church_n privilege_n knowledge_n prophesy_v may_v be_v unperfect_a and_o yet_o she_o withal_o so_o free_a from_o err_v that_o she_o may_v be_v bold_a in_o her_o determination_n to_o say_v visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la 15._o act._n 15._o it_o have_v be_v think_v good_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o us._n again_o you_o say_v and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n augustine_n say_v even_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v teach_v to_o say_v every_o day_n 18._o ar_n 88_o pur._n 393._o aug._n retra_n li._n 2._o ca._n 18._o forgeve_v we_o our_o trespass_n but_o why_o so_o because_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v err_v in_o her_o determination_n every_o day_n it_o be_v ridiculous_a so_o to_o say_v why_o they_o propter_fw-la quasdam_fw-la ignorantias_fw-la &_o infirmitates_fw-la membrorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la because_o of_o certain_a venial_a sin_n of_o her_o member_n proceed_v of_o ignorance_n &_o frailty_n say_v s._n augustine_n in_o which_o member_n the_o apostle_n also_o in_o their_o time_n be_v and_o therefore_o they_o also_o according_o be_v teach_v to_o say_v every_o day_n forgeve_v we_o our_o trespass_n and_o do_v say_v according_o 1._o jac_fw-la 3._o 1._o io._n 1._o we_o do_v all_o offend_v in_o many_o thing_n and_o yet_o i_o trow_v they_o do_v not_o err_v nor_o can_v err_v in_o their_o canonical_a write_n and_o determination_n this_o be_v all_o that_o you_o bring_v to_o prove_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n may_v err_v though_o you_o allege_v one_o other_o place_n that_o the_o whole_a synagogue_n do_v err_v and_o yet_o that_o also_o only_o in_o a_o fact_n not_o in_o a_o doctrine_n yea_o neither_o the_o whole_a synagogue_n but_o a_o piece_n only_o so_o that_o there_o be_v as_o you_o see_v no_o less_o than_o three_o wall_n as_o it_o be_v between_o the_o church_n and_o this_o shot_n of_o you_o these_o be_v your_o word_n 224.456_o pur._n 224.456_o david_n transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o carry_v the_o ark_n upon_o a_o new_a chariotte_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v bear_v upon_o man_n shoulder_n blindness_n …_o y_fw-es blindness_n 1._o chron._n 13._o wherein_o not_o only_a david_n but_o so_o many_o priest_n and_o levite_n so_o good_a a_o bishop_n and_o the_o whole_a general_n council_n of_o israel_n do_v err_v so_o say_v you_o but_o so_o say_v not_o the_o text_n yea_o it_o utter_o confound_v both_o you_o and_o all_o these_o profane_a innovation_n make_v by_o your_o ley_z head_n and_o parliamente_n david_n take_v counsel_n say_v the_o text_n with_o his_o tribune_n and_o centurion_n 1●…_n 1._o par._n 13._o &_o 1●…_n and_o all_o his_o noble_n he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o consult_v no_o not_o with_o the_o inferior_a sort_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o only_o if_o you_o please_v quoth_v he_o to_o his_o temporal_a lord_n and_o if_o the_o motion_n be_v of_o god_n let_v we_o send_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o brother_n in_o all_o the_o land_n of_o israel_n and_o to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n in_o their_o suburb_n as_o you_o will_v say_v the_o hedge_n priest_n that_o they_o gather_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o fetch_v again_o to_o we_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n and_o so_o they_o begin_v in_o such_o manner_n as_o you_o report_v until_o god_n kill_v oza_n the_o levite_n in_o the_o procession_n and_o so_o make_v david_n afraid_a to_o carry_v it_o any_o further_o but_o three_o month_n after_o have_v find_v his_o error_n he_o gather_v not_o only_o all_o israel_n into_o jerusalem_n but_o also_o filios_fw-la aaron_n sadoc_n et_fw-fr abiathar_n sacerdotes_fw-la the_o successor_n of_o aaron_n sadoc_n and_o abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n &_o levitas_fw-la and_o the_o levite_n with_o the_o head_n of_o they_o be_v these_o six_o vriel_n asaias_n joel_n semeias_n eliel_n and_o aminadab_n these_o two_o bishop_n and_o these_o six_o archedeacons_n that_o i_o may_v so_o term_v they_o he_o call_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o leviticall_a family_n prepare_v yourselves_o together_o with_o your_o brethren_n and_o bring_v the_o ark_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n to_o the_o place_n which_o be_v dress_v for_o it_o lest_o that_o as_o before_o because_o you_o be_v not_o present_a our_o lord_n do_v smite_v we_o so_o now_o also_o it_o happen_v for_o our_o unlawful_a do_v a_o notable_a ensample_n for_o all_o prince_n and_o for_o all_o noble_n to_o remember_v how_o they_o have_v offend_v and_o to_o amend_v it_o according_o and_o all_o a_o maiori_fw-la in_o every_o respect_n above_o the_o high_a degree_n one_o more_o of_o your_o place_n i_o think_v good_a here_o to_o examine_v though_o you_o bring_v it_o not_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v but_o only_o to_o answer_v a_o place_n that_o we_o bring_v for_o the_o contrary_n 86._o ar._n 86._o the_o true_a and_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n you_o say_v can_v never_o be_v void_a of_o god_n spirit_n and_o yet_o she_o may_v err_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v deceive_v in_o some_o thing_n even_o as_o
bestiam_fw-la even_o within_o one_o hour_n after_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v together_o with_o antichrist_n babylon_n the_o whore_n babylon_n to_o serve_v he_o as_o his_o feed_n knight_n and_o so_o you_o see_v evident_o by_o these_o seven_o hill_n thus_o expound_v that_o the_o woman_n which_o sit_v upon_o they_o be_v not_o so_o little_a a_o one_o as_o you_o do_v make_v she_o but_o that_o she_o be_v mundus_fw-la impiorum_fw-la the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a even_o from_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o last_o end_n thereof_o even_o all_o in_o effect_n that_o at_o the_o late_a day_n shall_v be_v drown_v in_o hell_n either_o for_o be_v of_o she_o 2._o apo._n 14.15_o 16.17.18_o 2._o pet._n 2._o or_o conform_v themselves_o unto_o she_o which_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n be_v most_o manifest_a as_o the_o world_n of_o the_o wicked_a it_o be_v which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o noah_n drown_v in_o the_o umbraticall_a deluge_n so_o that_o rome_n with_o the_o emperor_n of_o it_o while_o it_o be_v against_o the_o church_n be_v a_o member_n yet_o but_o a_o member_n of_o that_o woman_n as_o england_n contrariwise_o which_o be_v before_o so_o long_o together_o a_o notable_a member_n of_o the_o woman_n clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n be_v now_o become_v a_o member_n most_o miserable_a of_o the_o contrary_a woman_n and_o for_o reward_v of_o her_o mutation_n and_o apostasy_n thus_o plague_v of_o god_n that_o now_o she_o must_v hear_v the_o scripture_n so_o pernicious_o detort_v in_o all_o pulpit_n at_o large_a and_o may_v not_o hear_v they_o true_o sincere_o healthful_o report_v so_o much_o as_o in_o poor_a paper_n which_o if_o she_o may_v free_o and_o much_o more_o in_o pulpit_n down_o down_o god_n wot_v full_a soon_o will_v this_o lie_a and_o absurd_a new_a gospel_n come_v as_o by_o this_o little_a which_o have_v be_v here_o say_v any_o man_n of_o reason_n will_v not_o deny_v and_o now_o to_o our_o three_o question_n which_o be_v of_o purgatory_n the_o three_o part_n concern_v the_o question_n of_o purgatory_n d._n allen_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n of_o purgatory_n make_v two_o chapter_n of_o answer_n to_o their_o scripture_n yet_o say_v fulke_n at_o the_o first_o of_o the_o two_o this_o chapter_n be_v but_o pro_fw-la forma_fw-la tantum_fw-la 437._o pur._n 437._o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o a_o confutation_n where_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o our_o argument_n be_v not_o rehearse_v notwithstanding_o there_o and_z other_o where_o up_o and_o down_o he_o say_v enough_o to_o answer_v all_o but_o i_o shall_v endeavour_n therefore_o to_o satisfy_v the_o man_n better_o in_o this_o behalf_n collect_v together_o not_o only_o the_o ten_o part_n but_o even_o all_o his_o scripture_n not_o omit_v as_o much_o as_o one_o by_o my_o will_n though_o such_o collect_v and_o dispose_n of_o thing_n so_o disperse_v cost_v i_o in_o every_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n as_o much_o or_o more_o labour_n then_o to_o answer_v the_o same_o afterward_o well_o sir_n then_o you_o reason_n against_o purgatory_n by_o authority_n of_o scripture_n in_o part_n negative_o in_o part_n affirmative_o and_o your_o negative_a reason_n be_v sometime_o of_o a_o piece_n only_o sometime_o of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n again_o when_o it_o be_v out_o of_o a_o piece_n only_o it_o be_v partly_o out_o of_o some_o one_o place_n partly_o out_o of_o some_o one_o book_n j_o ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la scripturae_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr first_o therefore_o whatsoever_o you_o say_v negative_o out_o of_o a_o piece_n whether_o it_o be_v one_o place_n or_o one_o book_n you_o have_v yourself_o answer_v it_o for_o i_o 449._o pur._n 449._o whatsoever_o it_o be_v in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v no_o good_a logic_n to_o conclude_v negative_o of_o one_o place_n or_o book_n of_o scripture_n this_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o it_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a these_o be_v your_o own_o word_n even_o also_o speak_v there_o of_o this_o self_n same_o matter_n even_o of_o purgatory_n nevertheless_o to_o deal_v more_o substantial_o i_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o rehearse_v those_o place_n also_o and_o to_o answer_v they_o particular_o one_o of_o they_o be_v 1._o thes_n 4._o upon_o which_o in_o your_o negative_a divinity_n you_o demand_v and_o say_v 236._o pur._n 236._o how_o happen_v it_o that_o in_o so_o necessary_a a_o place_n s_o paul_n find_v no_o other_o comfort_n to_o moderate_v the_o mourning_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o only_o the_o quiet_a rest_n of_o they_o that_o be_v asleep_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o their_o glorious_a resurrection_n srue_o if_o s._n paul_n have_v be_v of_o chrysostom_n mind_n he_o will_v have_v prescribe_v other_o manner_n of_o comfort_n also_o against_o the_o father_n also_o as_o chrysostome_n do_v to_o wit_n exhort_v they_o to_o prayer_n and_o alm_n for_o their_o friend_n depart_v rather_o than_o to_o mourn_v so_o immoderate_o see_v you_o so_o reason_n out_o of_o this_o place_n i_o pray_v you_o let_v i_o ask_v you_o have_v you_o whensoever_o in_o sermon_n or_o otherwise_o you_o will_v moderate_v the_o mourning_n of_o the_o faithful_a no_o other_o comfort_n but_o only_o these_o two_o yea_o i_o say_v more_o if_o you_o have_v no_o mo_z comfort_n in_o that_o case_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o s._n paul_n there_o prescribe_v sure_o there_o be_v but_o only_o one_o to_o wit_n the_o hope_n of_o resurrection_n for_o although_o he_o name_v they_o that_o be_v asleep_a in_o the_o lord_n yet_o of_o their_o quiet_a rest_n after_o that_o sleep_a that_o be_v to_o say_v after_o their_o death_n he_o say_v nothing_o it_o be_v but_o your_o own_o addition_n another_o place_n with_o your_o negative_a logicks_fw-gr demand_n be_v where_o have_v grant_v 362._o pur._n 362._o that_o tertullian_n cyprian_n augustine_n jeronym_n and_o many_o more_o be_v witness_n that_o the_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n you_o pose_v the_o papist_n notwithstanding_o and_o ask_v why_o then_o the_o same_o be_v not_o set_v forth_o by_o matthew_n mark_v luke_n or_o paul_n where_o they_o set_v forth_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n your_o word_n at_o large_a and_o my_o answer_n go_v afore_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n pag._n ●_o save_v that_o piece_n of_o your_o word_n which_o contain_v your_o negative_a reason_n most_o clear_o and_o most_o bold_o say_v but_o against_o this_o feign_a tradition_n s._n paul_n cry_v with_o open_a mouth_n 1._o corin._n 11._o that_o which_o i_o deliver_v unto_o you_o i_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o only_a true_a substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o only_o right_a order_n of_o ministration_n and_o only_o right_a use_n and_o proper_a end_n thereof_o so_o you_o make_v as_o though_o the_o apostle_n there_o prescribe_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o ministration_n in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o only_o and_o no_o other_o may_v be_v the_o right_a order_n thereof_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o place_n 44._o infra_fw-la ca._n 11._o contr_n 44._o the_o rest_n i_o will_v set_v in_o order_n when_o i_o come_v you_o declare_v your_o great_a skill_n in_o the_o scripture_n when_o here_o so_o far_o you_o miss_v of_o the_o apostle_n purpose_n which_o be_v only_o against_o unworthy_a receive_n the_o greatness_n of_o that_o sin_n he_o show_v because_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n yea_o and_o that_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o death_n look_v better_o upon_o the_o place_n and_o see_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o as_o i_o say_v or_o rather_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v 3_o au._n ep_v 118._o ad_fw-la jan._n ca._n 3_o ind_n enim_fw-la &_o apostolus_fw-la indignè_fw-la dicit_fw-la acceptum_fw-la ab_fw-la eye_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la discernebant_fw-la a_o caeteris_fw-la cibis_fw-la veneratione_n singulariter_fw-la debita_fw-la quod_fw-la satis_fw-la toto_fw-la ipso_fw-la loco_fw-la in_o epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la corinthios_n prima_fw-la si_fw-la diligenter_n attendatur_fw-la apparet_fw-la for_o that_o respect_v the_o apostle_n also_o do_v say_v that_o they_o receive_v it_o unworthy_o who_o do_v not_o by_o due_a and_o singularlye_o due_a worship_n discern_v it_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o meat_n as_o sufficient_o appear_v through_o that_o same_o whole_a place_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n if_o it_o be_v diligent_o consider_v so_o then_o where_o the_o apostle_n intend_v no_o more_o but_o to_o correct_v the_o sin_n of_o unworthye_a receyve_n there_o to_o require_v of_o we_o to_o show_v that_o he_o prescribe_v it_o to_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o dead_a yea_o and_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o ministration_n have_v not_o you_o forsooth_o great_a reason_n and_o even_o as_o great_a you_o have_v where_o you_o argue_v out_o of_o particular_a
body_n before_o the_o general_a resurrection_n if_o that_o be_v so_o manifest_a what_o else_o be_v it_o then_o but_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o soul_n that_o martha_n will_v have_v christ_n to_o pray_v for_o when_o she_o say_v thus_o unto_o he_o but_o also_o now_o i_o know_v that_o whatsoever_o thing_n thou_o shall_v ask_v of_o god_n god_n will_v grant_v thou_o to_o which_o purpose_n also_o some_o ancient_a writer_n expound_v that_o place_n but_o to_o allege_v place_n be_v not_o my_o intent_n here_o it_o be_v only_o to_o answer_v your_o allegation_n and_o now_o have_v do_v with_o all_o your_o negative_n we_o be_v come_v to_o your_o affirmative_n ij_o ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la scripturae_fw-la affirmative_a first_o about_o certain_a foundation_n of_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o brevity_n to_o speak_v joint_o of_o purgatory_n and_o of_o relieve_n the_o soul_n that_o be_v there_o your_o affirmative_a allegation_n against_o both_o be_v levy_v by_o you_o partly_o at_o the_o foundation_n of_o they_o partly_o at_o the_o two_o themselves_o and_o the_o foundation_n be_v diverse_a you_o have_v both_o several_a shot_n against_o the_o several_n and_o also_o one_o common_a shot_n against_o all_o or_o many_o of_o they_o in_o common_a to_o each_o sort_n i_o shall_v with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n who_o cause_n it_o be_v make_v answer_v most_o easy_o and_o most_o true_o the_o distinction_n of_o venial_a and_o mortal_a sin_n and_o first_o d._n allen_n declare_v out_o of_o the_o doctor_n 126.127.128_o pur._n 126.127.128_o what_o sin_n may_v be_v purge_v in_o purgatory_n to_o wit_n not_o only_o such_o as_o be_v venial_a of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o also_o such_o as_o be_v mortal_a of_o their_o own_o nature_n so_o that_o they_o be_v in_o god_n church_n remit_v afore_o fulke_n say_v that_o this_o be_v manifest_o overthrow_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n even_o from_o the_o foundation_n for_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v the_o distinction_n of_o venial_a and_o mortal_a sin_n not_o so_o sir_n the_o doctrine_n be_v that_o mortal_a sin_n by_o the_o church_n remission_n become_v as_o venial_a and_o you_o grant_v it_o yourself_o say_v all_o sin_n except_o certain_a of_o which_o your_o good_a exception_n i_o shall_v say_v more_o anon_o by_o god_n mercy_n be_v pardonable_a or_o venial_a thus_o you_o grant_v the_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o you_o grant_v not_o the_o foresay_a distinction_n therefore_o the_o distinction_n be_v not_o the_o foundation_n of_o that_o doctrine_n but_o the_o doctrine_n may_v stand_v well_o without_o it_o but_o yet_o for_o other_o cause_n we_o must_v be_v content_a to_o see_v what_o you_o allege_v against_o the_o distinction_n the_o word_n of_o god_n plain_o determine_v that_o every_o sin_n be_v mortal_a &_o deserve_v eternal_a death_n seem_v it_o never_o so_o small_a so_o you_o say_v and_o you_o allege_v three_o place_n for_o it_o the_o first_o curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o abide_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n to_o fulfil_v they_o deut._n 27._o i_o sir_n but_o find_v you_o in_o the_o scripture_n no_o other_o curse_n that_o be_v to_o say_v pain_n for_o sin_n but_o eternal_a death_n be_v it_o not_o write_v curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o hang_v on_o tree_n yet_o hang_v on_o tree_n or_o crucify_a 3._o deut._n 21._o gal._n 3._o be_v not_o eternal_a death_n again_o every_o one_o in_o that_o say_n be_v mean_v by_o the_o apostle_n exposition_n not_o of_o christian_n but_o of_o they_o only_o which_o trust_v in_o the_o law_n for_o itself_o who_o in_o deed_n can_v never_o attain_v to_o no_o remission_n neither_o of_o their_o mortal_a nor_o of_o their_o venial_a sin_n but_o we_o that_o hold_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o spirit_n be_v in_o case_n always_o to_o receive_v remission_n whensoever_o we_o sin_v venial_o 1.3_o 1._o joan._n 1.3_o for_o so_o we_o can_v but_o we_o can_v not_o sin_v mortal_o hold_v i_o say_v christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o do_v sin_n mortal_o at_o any_o time_n deprive_v ourselves_o thereby_o of_o christ_n spirit_n the_o remedy_n be_v to_o seek_v for_o the_o same_o again_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o then_o be_v we_o in_o good_a case_n again_o as_o before_o your_o other_o two_o place_n be_v these_o the_o soul_n that_o sin_v shall_v die_v ezech._n 18._o and_o the_o reward_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n rom._n 6._o s._n james_n give_v we_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o &_o such_o like_a place_n where_o he_o say_v peccatum_fw-la verò_fw-la cum_fw-la consummatum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la generate_fw-la mortem_fw-la 1._o jac._n 1._o sin_n when_o it_o be_v consummate_v gender_v death_n but_o not_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v gendr_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v sin_n as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v gendr_v therefore_o some_o sin_n there_o be_v which_o yet_o gender_v not_o death_n mark_v the_o order_n deinde_fw-la concupiscentia_fw-la cum_fw-la conceperit_fw-la parit_fw-la peccatum_fw-la peccatum_fw-la verò_fw-la cum_fw-la consummatum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la generate_fw-la mortem_fw-la first_o come_v the_o temptation_n of_o our_o concupiscence_n as_o it_o be_v of_o a_o lewd_a woman_n second_o concupiscence_n when_o she_o have_v conceive_v by_o obtain_v some_o light_a consent_n bear_v sin_n venial_a sin_n mary_n three_o sin_n when_o it_o be_v consummate_v by_o our_o full_a and_o perfect_a consent_n yield_v unto_o it_o gender_v or_o bring_v forth_o death_n if_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o weight_n according_o for_o else_o that_o the_o lightness_n of_o the_o matter_n as_o a_o idle_a word_n bring_v not_o death_n he_o sufficient_o signify_v in_o say_v that_o in_o a_o weighty_a matter_n the_o lightness_n or_o imperfection_n of_o consent_n do_v it_o not_o whether_o after_o sin_n remit_v pain_n may_v remain_v now_o to_o another_o foundation_n to_o wit_n that_o culpa_fw-la the_o fault_n both_o in_o venial_a and_o in_o mortal_a sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o church_n and_o yet_o some_o pain_n though_o not_o eternal_a be_v owe_v for_o it_o sometime_o so_o that_o the_o same_o must_v in_o such_o case_n be_v in_o this_o life_n either_o pay_v or_o pardon_v or_o else_o in_o purgatory_n it_o will_v be_v exact_v 45._o pur._n 45._o this_o be_v against_o ezechiel_n say_v fulke_n what_o time_n soever_o a_o man_n do_v true_o repent_v the_o lord_n do_v put_v all_o his_o sin_n out_o of_o his_o remembrance_n you_o may_v have_v do_v well_o to_o quote_v the_o place_n where_o ezechiel_n so_o say_v ad_fw-la verbum_fw-la the_o truth_n be_v that_o in_o a_o moment_n the_o repentance_n may_v be_v so_o great_a that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o remembrance_n at_o all_o but_o ezechiel_n if_o you_o mean_v the_o 18._o chapter_n speak_v of_o a_o long_a time_n so_o that_o the_o wicked_a man_n must_v repent_v he_o of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o keep_v all_o god_n commandment_n and_o do_v right_a and_o justice_n and_o then_o vita_fw-la vivit_fw-la &_o non_fw-la morietur_fw-la when_o the_o day_n come_v to_o reward_v every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n here_o he_o shall_v live_v &_o not_o die_v all_o his_o iniquity_n that_o he_o work_v i_o will_v not_o remember_v say_v god_n for_o his_o justice_n that_o he_o wrought_v he_o shall_v live_v for_o otherwise_o who_o know_v not_o those_o voice_n 24.78_o psal_n 24.78_o lord_n remember_v not_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o youth_n and_o lord_n remember_v not_o our_o old_a sin_n be_v they_o not_o the_o word_n of_o man_n which_o have_v already_o repent_v they_o acknowledge_v nevertheless_o that_o god_n may_v yet_o remember_v they_o again_o you_o say_v it_o be_v against_o david_n 102._o pur._n 45.46_o psal_n 102._o the_o lord_n have_v remove_v our_o sin_n from_o we_o as_o far_o as_o the_o east_n be_v from_o the_o west_n who_o may_v not_o say_v this_o for_o be_v remove_v from_o eternal_a damnation_n although_o he_o have_v yet_o to_o abide_v never_o so_o much_o temporal_a punishment_n howbeit_o those_o word_n as_o the_o whole_a psalm_n be_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n of_o our_o first_o receive_v again_o into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n by_o absolution_n but_o to_o magnify_v his_o mercy_n in_o our_o final_a restitution_n which_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o late_a day_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o church_n very_o apt_o sing_v that_o psalm_n upon_o the_o feast_n of_o christ_n ascension_n also_o out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n you_o say_v the_o publican_n 43._o pur._n 43._o the_o prodigal_a child_n the_o debtor_n all_o clear_o remit_v do_v plain_o prove_v that_o god_n free_o forgive_v justifi_v reward_v the_o penitent_a sinner_n without_o exact_v any_o punishment_n of_o they_o for_o answer_v of_o the_o debt_n satisfy_v for_o the_o sin_n abuse_v his_o fatherly_a clemency_n luk._n 7.15.18_o you_o speak_v here_o very_o indefinite_o as_o though_o god_n
they_o end_v not_o their_o life_n in_o sin_n because_o that_o pray_v be_v according_a to_o god_n will_n for_o it_o follow_v there_o immediate_o who_o so_o know_v his_o brother_n to_o sin_n he_o use_v the_o present_a tense_n and_o not_o the_o preterfect_a tense_n to_o have_v sin_v because_o his_o intent_n be_v to_o exhort_v also_o the_o sinner_n to_o leave_v by_o time_n a_o sin_n not_o to_o death_n as_o one_o that_o live_v in_o schism_n but_o yet_o be_v reconcile_v before_o he_o die_v let_v he_o after_o his_o death_n request_v of_o christ_n and_o life_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o he_o to_o one_o i_o say_v sin_v not_o unto_o death_n sin_n there_o be_v unto_o death_n i_o say_v not_o that_o any_o pray_v for_o that_o because_o it_o be_v not_o according_a to_o christ_n will_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o be_v in_o hell_n all_o iniquity_n be_v sin_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v diligent_o avoid_v and_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o moment_n to_o be_v incur_v and_o there_o be_v sin_n unto_o death_n as_o if_o he_o will_v say_v if_o you_o avoid_v not_o that_o no_o hope_n after_o your_o death_n your_o brethren_n can_v not_o help_v you_o by_o pray_v for_o you_o this_o be_v the_o plain_n and_o smooth_a sense_n of_o that_o whole_a place_n and_o so_o must_v needs_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o man_n nor_o no_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n but_o we_o may_v pray_v for_o he_o and_o it_o as_o neither_o the_o novatians_n as_o bad_a as_o they_o be_v do_v deny_v only_o the_o protestant_n deny_v it_o because_o they_o have_v no_o other_o shift_n to_o avoid_v this_o place_n and_o thereby_o let_v any_o indifferent_a any_o christian_a man_n judge_n whether_o this_o be_v not_o a_o plain_a place_n for_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a fulke_n word_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n and_o man_n in_o this_o life_n not_o to_o be_v pray_v for_o and_o that_o to_o be_v this_o sin_n and_o sinner_n unto_o death_n i_o shall_v recite_v in_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n among_o his_o gross_a error_n and_o absurdity_n thus_o i_o have_v answer_v thanks_o be_v to_o god_n all_o his_o scripture_n against_o purgatory_n and_o all_o his_o argument_n make_v out_o of_o the_o authority_n thereof_o both_o negative_o and_o affirmative_o 4._o cap._n 7._o part_n 4._o whereby_o appear_v to_o the_o full_a the_o vanity_n of_o his_o brag_n in_o the_o last_o chapter_n against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o he_o can_v &_o will_v produce_v against_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o such_o plain_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n such_o scripture_n also_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o each_o place_n as_o by_o no_o mean_n may_v be_v avoid_v whereas_o among_o all_o his_o testimony_n you_o see_v there_o be_v not_o one_o but_o it_o have_v be_v clear_o answer_v as_o now_o in_o this_o four_o &_o last_o part_n shall_v be_v answer_v likewise_o with_o the_o like_a help_n of_o god_n all_o other_o scripture_n that_o in_o these_o two_o most_o insolent_a libel_n in_o any_o place_n up_o and_o down_o he_o allege_v against_o any_o other_o point_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n the_o four_o part_n concern_v all_o other_o question_n that_o he_o mention_v and_o first_o to_o put_v all_o the_o same_o in_o some_o order_n for_o the_o more_o utility_n of_o the_o reader_n i_o conceive_v all_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o we_o and_o the_o protestant_n in_o this_o division_n some_o be_v about_o the_o witness_n of_o god_n word_n the_o principle_n of_o divinity_n or_o ground_n of_o all_o truth_n which_o by_o they_o be_v only_a scripture_n by_o we_o not_o only_a scripture_n but_o also_o the_o church_n and_o certain_a other_o whereupon_o we_o frame_v our_o motive_n to_o all_o man_n to_o believe_v we_o &_o not_o the_o heretic_n show_v they_o that_o such_o and_o such_o be_v the_o principle_n which_o they_o must_v believe_v and_o withal_o that_o the_o say_v principle_n every_o one_o of_o they_o stand_v for_o we_o and_o not_o for_o the_o protestant_n some_o be_v about_o other_o particular_a or_o private_a controversy_n which_o may_v be_v reduce_v unto_o these_o two_o head_n good-worke_n and_o the_o sacrament_n the_o doctrine_n of_o which_o both_o they_o corrupt_v with_o their_o new_a invention_n of_o only_a faith_n faith_n only_o scripture_n and_o only_a faith_n as_o they_o do_v the_o foresay_a with_o their_o toy_n of_o only_a scripture_n what_o scripture_n he_o allege_v about_o the_o first_o sort_n i_o have_v in_o the_o two_o first_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n report_v they_o all_o &_o answer_v they_o save_v a_o very_a few_o which_o i_o reserve_v to_o the_o ten_o chapter_n which_o shall_v be_v of_o every_o motive_n or_o demand_n apart_o by_o itself_o there_o in_o these_o five_o motive_n of_o church_n service_n priesthood_n with_o sacrifice_n monk_n and_o pope_n i_o will_v answer_v his_o few_o scripture_n thereunto_o belong_v now_o then_o concern_v the_o second_o sort_n and_o first_o good-worke_n what_o he_o allege_v about_o they_o concern_v they_o partly_o in_o general_a partly_o in_o special_a that_o be_v to_o say_v prayer_n fast_v or_o alm_n about_o good-work_n in_o general_n justification_n justification_n good_a work_n in_o general_a it_o concern_v that_o he_o say_v they_o do_v not_o justify_v whereunto_o he_o allege_v two_o place_n one_o of_o s._n paul_n 450._o pur._n 450._o the_o other_o of_o esay_n we_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n only_o rom._n 3._o and_o yet_o we_o believe_v that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v in_o every_o man_n that_o be_v justify_v fa●sarie_a a_o fa●sarie_a jac._n 5._o the_o word_n of_o s._n james_n be_v not_o as_o he_o say_v but_o express_o against_o he_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o where_o you_o see_v also_o that_o it_o be_v in_o all_o one_o sense_n that_o work_n do_v justify_v and_o faith_n the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n likewise_o be_v not_o as_o he_o say_v but_o thus_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v to_o say_v although_o he_o have_v not_o evermore_o do_v the_o work_n which_o the_o law_n command_v to_o wit_n good_a work_n yea_o although_o he_o have_v sometime_o yea_o and_o always_o do_v the_o clean_a contrary_n to_o wit_n all_o evil_a work_n yet_o let_v he_o come_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o he_o shall_v there_o find_v a_o remedy_n for_o all_o and_o of_o a_o wicked_a and_o so_o wicked_a a_o man_n be_v make_v just_a all_o his_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n be_v remit_v he_o this_o say_v s_n paul_n and_o the_o same_o say_v we_o but_o after_o he_o be_v so_o justify_v he_o must_v not_o do_v the_o like_a again_o he_o must_v then_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n be_v now_o by_o christ_n make_v a_o new_a man_n and_o able_a thereunto_o and_o by_o so_o do_v he_o shall_v be_v more_o justify_v as_o s._n james_n say_v confer_v these_o two_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n also_o the_o justice_n that_o be_v of_o the_o law_n qui_fw-la fecerit_fw-la homo_fw-la the_o man_n that_o have_v do_v it_o shall_v live_v by_o it_o rom._n 10._o ex_fw-la levit._fw-la 18._o which_o be_v in_o effect_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v live_v by_o it_o because_o no_o man_n have_v do_v it_o but_o all_o man_n have_v do_v against_o it_o all_o be_v bear_v in_o sin_n &_o therefore_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o justice_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o great_a mercy_n he_o save_v we_o by_o baptism_n tit._n 3._o do_v you_o mark_v the_o tense_n he_o speak_v of_o work_n before_o faith_n where_o you_o shall_v have_v allege_v of_o work_n after_o faith_n and_o so_o withal_o be_v answer_v your_o other_o place_n 102._o ar._n 102._o where_o you_o say_v that_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o content_a to_o be_v clothe_v in_o the_o white_a shine_a silk_n which_o be_v the_o justification_n of_o saint_n make_v white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n but_o with_o the_o filthy_a rag_n of_o man_n righteousness_n esai_n 64._o if_o god_n convert_v your_o heart_n that_o you_o may_v return_v to_o your_o mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o she_o will_v make_v nothing_o of_o all_o the_o good_a work_n which_o you_o do_v now_o in_o heresy_n because_o it_o be_v but_o man_n righteousness_n but_o the_o good_a work_n which_o afterward_o in_o the_o church_n you_o shall_v have_v of_o her_o husband_n the_o lamb_n where_o learned_a you_o to_o call_v they_o the_o filthy_a rag_n of_o man_n righteousness_n 19_o apoc._n 19_o he_o that_o doubt_v whether_o those_o justification_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o apocalypse_n be_v as_o i_o say_v just_a work_n the_o same_o apostle_n if_o he_o will_v confer_v place_n in_o
a_o stone_n fall_v from_o a_o high_a although_o it_o be_v most_o proper_o say_v tendit_fw-la in_o centrum_fw-la terrae_fw-la yet_o be_v it_o well_o say_v also_o tendit_fw-la in_o superficiem_fw-la terrae_fw-la as_o in_o order_n to_o the_o centre_n whereupon_o in_o say_v it_o tend_v to_o the_o superficies_n we_o do_v in_o deed_n say_v it_o tend_v to_o the_o centre_n i_o know_v some_o catholic_n in_o answer_v to_o this_o objection_n do_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v such_o invocation_n as_o tend_v immediate_o to_o the_o last_o end_n that_o be_v to_o god_n &_o so_o do_v grant_v according_o that_o it_o be_v beleve_v in_o god_n alone_o whereof_o he_o speak_v which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o the_o objection_n but_o i_o consider_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n as_o mediator_n &_o therefore_o as_o man_n have_v say_v what_o i_o think_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o text_n as_o for_o your_o jangle_v there_o without_o allegation_n that_o if_o saint_n be_v invocate_v than_o god_n alone_o know_v not_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n 451._o pur._n 451._o and_o god_n only_o be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o serve_v and_o christ_n be_v not_o our_o only_a mediator_n and_o advocate_n where_o you_o say_v this_o to_o we_o now_o who_o you_o deny_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o to_o s._n ambrose_n with_o other_o of_o old_a who_o you_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o so_o you_o must_v say_v it_o likewise_o to_o s._n john_n for_o invocate_a the_o holy_a angel_n apoc._n 1._o and_o to_o god_n himself_o for_o make_v a_o angel_n to_o be_v worship_v apo._n 3._o as_o more_o at_o large_a i_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n to_o the_o angel_n also_o that_o in_o his_o golden_a censer_n offer_v our_o prayer_n make_v such_o a_o perfume_n of_o they_o before_o god_n 42._o supra_fw-la pag._n 42._o by_o mean_n of_o his_o incense_n mingle_v with_o they_o apo._n 8._o to_o the_o 24._o senior_n also_o which_o semblable_o have_v phialas_fw-la adoramentorum_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la orationes_fw-la sanctorun_n sweet_a odour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v our_o prayer_n in_o bowl_n for_o the_o purpose_n singing_z according_o praise_n to_o christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o tribe_n &_o tongue_n &_o people_n &_o nation_n apoc._n 5._o final_o to_o all_o which_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n recommend_v other_o to_o god_n or_o desire_v to_o be_v recommend_v of_o other_o if_o you_o will_v not_o quarrel_v with_o these_o likewise_o you_o must_v let_v fall_v your_o suit_n against_o the_o former_a and_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o against_o one_o mediator_n to_o god_n though_o we_o be_v &_o have_v never_o so_o many_o mediator_n so_o that_o all_o make_v suit_n to_o god_n by_o he_o nothing_o also_o against_o god_n alone_o to_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o we_o worship_v none_o but_o for_o he_o nothing_o final_o against_o god_n alone_o to_o know_v our_o heart_n so_o that_o all_o other_o know_v they_o by_o he_o for_o otherwise_o your_o argument_n procee_v aswell_o against_o chirst_n the_o man_n that_o neither_o he_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v 2._o 1._o tim._n 2._o nor_o know_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n for_o as_o he_o have_v it_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n so_o his_o saint_n likewise_o by_o gift_n have_v it_o in_o their_o degree_n so_o much_o of_o prayer_n now_o to_o fast_v fast_v fast_v about_o which_o you_o have_v again_o two_o text_n thus_o you_o say_v to_o d._n allen_n you_o be_v they_o that_o attend_v to_o spirit_n of_o error_n &_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n forbid_v to_o marry_v 20.93_o pur._n 391.20_o 22._o ar._n 20.93_o and_o abstain_v or_o command_v to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o thanks_o give_v 1._o tim._n 4._o there_o be_v the_o brand_n mark_v of_o romish_a religion_n that_o all_o the_o water_n in_o tiberis_n nor_o in_o the_o ocean_n sea_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o wash_v out_o well_o &_o lusty_o crow_v but_o soft_a a_o little_a &_o you_o shall_v see_v i_o straight_o draw_v enough_o and_o enough_o again_o even_o out_o of_o your_o own_o puddle_n to_o wash_v all_o sufficient_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n i_o have_v record_v your_o own_o word_n 10._o supra_fw-la pag._n 10._o how_o aerius_n teach_v that_o fasting-day_n be_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o how_o jovinian_a teach_v that_o fast_a and_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n profit_v little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o 45.46_o ar._n 45.46_o and_o that_o for_o this_o cause_n s._n epiphanius_n and_o s._n augustine_n count_v aerius_n for_o a_o heretic_n as_o s._n augustine_n count_v jovinian_a likewise_o for_o no_o better_a for_o that_o he_o say_v 68_o au._n she_o 82_o &_o the_o ec._n dog_n ca._n 68_o nec_fw-la aliquid_fw-la prodesse_fw-la that_o fast_n and_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n do_v not_o profit_v any_o thing_n or_o as_o we_o have_v in_o another_o place_n for_o that_o he_o do_v believe_v nil_fw-la meriti_fw-la accrescere_fw-la that_o it_o be_v no_o increase_n of_o merit_n to_o they_o that_o for_o love_n to_o chastise_v their_o body_n do_v abstain_v from_o wine_n or_o flesh_n of_o that_o judgement_n be_v these_o father_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v if_o you_o remember_v your_o own_o confession_n since_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o in_o high_a favour_n with_o god_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v not_o such_o a_o mark_n in_o romish_a religion_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v currant_n enough_o how_o much_o more_o consider_v that_o you_o confess_v further_o 9_o pur._n 75._o 1._o cor._n 9_o and_o say_v in_o deed_n s._n paul_n command_v and_o by_o his_o example_n commend_v christian_n chastisement_n of_o man_n body_n by_o abstinence_n and_o fast_v and_o that_o for_o danger_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n be_v not_o here_o then_o great_a need_n of_o all_o tiberis_n yea_o and_o of_o all_o the_o ocean_n sea_n well_o then_o who_o &_o what_o do_v s._n paul_n mean_v there_o the_o manichée_n the_o tacianiste_n &_o other_o such_o heretic_n of_o who_o i_o note_v more_o in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n which_o say_v that_o certain_a meat_n be_v the_o creature_n of_o the_o devil_n mark_v the_o word_n and_o confer_v they_o together_o to_o abstain_v from_o the_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v and_o why_o be_v that_o a_o error_n and_o a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o devil_n because_o every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n answer_v the_o manichée_n as_o i_o do_v now_o the_o protestant_n note_v in_o like_a manner_n upon_o the_o very_a word_n 6._o aug._n contra_fw-la faust_n li._n 30_o ca._n 6._o that_o there_o be_v much_o difference_n between_o they_o that_o abstain_v from_o meat_n for_o a_o sacred_a signification_n as_o they_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o for_o chastise_v of_o the_o body_n as_o now_o the_o catholic_n and_o they_o that_o abstain_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v dicendo_fw-la quod_fw-la eos_fw-la deus_fw-la non_fw-la creavit_fw-la say_v that_o god_n do_v not_o create_v they_o therefore_o the_o former_a be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o late_a of_o the_o lie_a devil_n your_o other_o text_n be_v for_o jovinian_a against_o the_o merit_n of_o fast_v if_o jovinian_a teach_v 46._o ar._n 46._o that_o fast_v abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n and_o other_o bodily_a exercise_n of_o themselves_o profit_v little_a his_o doctrine_n agree_v with_o s._n paul_n 1._o tim._n 4._o but_o if_o he_o teach_v as_o he_o be_v charge_v that_o such_o thing_n profit_v nothing_o at_o all_o we_o agree_v not_o with_o he_o in_o that_o opinion_n you_o will_v fain_o wipe_v your_o hand_n of_o jovinian_n heresy_n but_o it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o brandmarke_n be_v imprint_v to_o deep_a it_o will_v not_o out_o for_o his_o heresy_n be_v as_o you_o hear_v even_o now_o that_o fast_v &_o abstinence_n be_v not_o more_o meritorious_a then_o eat_v with_o thanks_o give_v so_o s._n augustine_n mean_v merit_n merit_n when_o he_o charge_v he_o to_o have_v teach_v nec_fw-la aliquid_fw-la prodesse_fw-la that_o they_o profit_v nothing_o as_o by_o another_o place_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o more_o plain_o and_o as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n in_o the_o very_a next_o article_n of_o his_o heresy_n he_o charge_v he_o that_o meritis_fw-la adaequabat_fw-la to_o the_o merit_n of_o chaste_a and_o faithful_a matrimony_n he_o make_v equal_a and_o not_o more_o meritorious_a as_o the_o catholic_n do_v and_o do_v the_o virginity_n of_o nun_n and_o the_o continence_n of_o the_o mansexe_n in_o holy_a person_n that_o choose_v the_o single_a life_n s._n paul_n word_n to_o timothée_n be_v these_o exercise_v thyself_o unto_o religion_n or_o godliness_n for_o bodily_a exercise_n be_v profitable_a
catholic_n as_o none_o can_v be_v more_o and_o some_o of_o their_o suffering_n in_o england_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o prison_n in_o iron_n and_o that_o after_o the_o most_o terrible_a and_o most_o cruel_a manner_n do_v most_o glorious_o declare_v ¶_o the_o nine_o chapter_n to_o defend_v that_o the_o doctor_n as_o they_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v we_o in_o very_o many_o point_n so_o they_o be_v we_o in_o all_o point_n and_o the_o protestant_n in_o no_o point_n all_o the_o doctor_n saying_n that_o he_o aleage_v be_v examine_v &_o answer_v the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o doctor_n general_o j_o his_o chaleng_v word_n that_o out_o of_o the_o old_a doctor_n church_n be_v no_o salvation_n &_o that_o they_o make_v with_o we_o in_o many_o thing_n against_o the_o protestant_n i_o declare_v in_o the_o three_o first_o chapter_n by_o fulke_n own_o confession_n now_o to_o declare_v further_o that_o they_o be_v whole_o we_o with_o the_o 383._o the_o aug._n sic_fw-la invocat_fw-la cyprianum_n de_fw-fr bapt._n con_v don._n lib._n 5._o ca._n 17._o &_o li._n 7._o cap._n 1._o pur._n 432._o pur._n 383._o help_n of_o their_o prayer_n i_o will_v defend_v that_o in_o nothing_o they_o make_v for_o the_o protestant_n against_o we_o because_o he_o say_v unto_o d._n allen_n speak_v of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o counsel_n among_o who_o as_o we_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o you_o have_v some_o patron_n of_o some_o of_o your_o error_n so_o will_v we_o affirm_v that_o you_o have_v more_o enemy_n in_o the_o great_a again_o the_o papist_n offer_v to_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o yet_o in_o most_o thing_n yea_o in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o religion_n they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctor_n and_o old_a counsel_n again_o brag_v of_o they_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o will_v 406._o pur._n 406._o thou_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o of_o 20._o error_n which_o thou_o defende_v corydon_n rusticus_n es_fw-la corydon_n they_o do_v hold_v one_o if_o they_o have_v speak_v otherwise_o then_o truth_n in_o any_o matter_n they_o must_v be_v christ._n be_v in_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o scribe_n against_o christ._n tell_v of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n but_o thou_o must_v not_o think_v that_o for_o one_o error_n common_a with_o they_o thou_o must_v hold_v a_o hundred_o contrary_a to_o they_o he_o say_v in_o most_o thing_n and_o 238._o pur._n 238._o in_o a_o hundred_o for_o one_o yea_o more_o than_o that_o in_o another_o place_n it_o may_v be_v a_o shame_n to_o you_o papist_n say_v he_o to_o leave_v &_o condemn_v for_o heresy_n all_o that_o be_v true_a in_o those_o man_n writing_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o make_v such_o vaunt_n for_o a_o few_o superstitious_a ceremony_n 407._o pur._n 407._o and_o uncincere_a opinion_n and_o again_o nay_o m._n allen_n though_o those_o doctor_n buyld_v some_o hay_n or_o stouble_v upon_o the_o only_a foundation_n christ_n their_o case_n be_v ten_o thousand_o time_n better_o than_o you_o which_o buyld_v nothing_o but_o dirt_n and_o dung_n temper_v with_o hay_n and_o stubble_n upon_o no_o foundation_n at_o all_o and_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o dig_v up_o the_o only_a true_a foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n jesus_n christ_n make_v he_o nothing_o better_o than_o a_o common_a person_n except_o his_o bare_a name_n 60._o ar._n 60._o and_o once_o again_o more_o particular_o the_o other_o writer_n of_o late_a year_n he_o speak_v before_o of_o justinus_n martyr_n and_o ireneus_fw-la we_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v some_o corruption_n whereby_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v colour_n of_o defence_n for_o invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o diverse_a superstitious_a and_o superfluous_a ceremony_n but_o for_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n the_o office_n of_o christ_n redemption_n justification_n satisfaction_n the_o fruit_n of_o christ_n his_o passion_n grace_n faith_n work_n authority_n of_o god_n word_n authority_n of_o the_o pope_n real_a presence_n transubstantiation_n communion_n in_o both_o kind_n image_n etc._n etc._n the_o most_o approve_a writer_n tertullian_n cyprian_n origen_n epiphanius_n hilarius_n chrysostomus_n jeronymus_n ambrose_n augustinus_n etc._n etc._n be_v utter_o against_o you_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v of_o your_o church_n lo_o this_o he_o say_v of_o our_o differ_v from_o the_o doctor_n first_o touch_v the_o number_n of_o the_o point_n to_o wit_n in_o most_o thing_n in_o many_o hundred_o yea_o in_o all_o that_o be_v true_a in_o their_o writing_n and_o second_o touch_v the_o weight_n of_o the_o point_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o great_a and_o chief_a even_o about_o god_n and_o christ_n himself_o with_o those_o other_o that_o he_o name_v ij_o a_o general_a answer_n to_o his_o challenge_n declare_v that_o we_o need_v not_o to_o answer_v his_o doctor_n particular_o wherein_o i_o think_v reader_n whatsoever_o thou_o be_v thou_o do_v of_o thyself_o abhor_v the_o mouth_n which_o so_o filthy_o run_v over_o and_o therefore_o desire_v not_o that_o i_o take_v the_o pain_n which_o i_o have_v promise_v to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o this_o chapter_n upon_o the_o doctor_n as_o also_o other_o good_a cause_n there_o be_v why_o i_o may_v spare_v that_o labour_n 432._o pur._n 383_o 432._o first_o because_o speak_v of_o the_o old_a doctor_n and_o old_a counsel_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a primative_a church_n he_o say_v 383.432_o pur._n 383.432_o for_o which_o cause_n that_o be_v because_o the_o papist_n do_v offer_v to_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o truth_n we_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o man_n we_o stand_v for_o authority_n only_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o say_v as_o he_o agree_v well_o with_o himself_o above_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n where_o he_o do_v set_v at_o nought_o all_o but_o only_a scripture_n so_o i_o have_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n answer_v all_o his_o scripture_n have_v by_o this_o his_o own_o judgement_n full_o satisfy_v he_o although_o i_o meddle_v not_o at_o all_o with_o his_o doctor_n unless_o he_o require_v i_o to_o spend_v time_n only_o to_o maintain_v their_o honour_n which_o make_v the_o foresaid_a offer_n be_v otherwise_o as_o he_o here_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v the_o confirmation_n of_o truth_n again_o because_o he_o himself_o for_o i_o do_v answer_v all_o his_o own_o doctor_n if_o it_o be_v right_o consider_v end_n see_v cap._n 5._o in_o the_o end_n in_o that_o he_o confess_v they_o to_o have_v hold_v with_o we_o the_o very_a same_o point_n for_o the_o which_o we_o must_v be_v condemn_v no_o remedy_n as_o differ_v from_o the_o doctor_n in_o the_o great_a point_n for_o why_o do_v he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o against_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o we_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o worship_v of_o their_o relic_n but_o the_o doctor_n hold_v the_o same_o he_o confess_v both_o here_o tradition_n sup._n cap._n 3._o part_n 2._o sup._n cap._n 7._o par_fw-fr 1._o in_o tradition_n and_o more_o ample_o in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n why_o do_v he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n but_o because_o we_o hold_v with_o tradition_n but_o the_o doctor_n hold_v with_o the_o same_o he_o confess_v in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n and_o so_o forth_o in_o the_o residue_n of_o those_o great_a point_n as_o may_v easy_o be_v deduce_v in_o like_a manner_n or_o at_o the_o least_o so_o prove_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v fain_o to_o confess_v as_o much_o in_o somuch_o that_o of_o one_o of_o those_o point_n he_o say_v thus_o express_o i_o confess_v with_o m._n allen_n 156._o pur._n 156._o that_o the_o old_a writer_n not_o only_o know_v but_o also_o have_v express_v the_o value_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ_n in_o such_o word_n as_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o the_o popish_a satisfaction_n can_v stand_v with_o they_o and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n see_v what_o follow_v immediate_o against_o the_o value_n of_o which_o redemption_n say_v he_o if_o they_o have_v utter_v any_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o satisfaction_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o we_o may_v lawful_o reject_v their_o authority_n not_o only_o though_o they_o be_v doctor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o if_o they_o be_v angel_n from_o heaven_n so_o that_o now_o we_o no_o more_o need_n to_o defend_v against_o he_o that_o we_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctor_n in_o such_o great_a point_n then_o that_o the_o doctor_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o themselves_o in_o the_o same_o as_o also_o that_o
say_v he_o how_o without_o idolatry_n earth_n may_v be_v adore_v without_o idolatry_n christ_n footstool_n may_v be_v adore_v for_o he_o take_v earth_n of_o earth_n because_o flesh_n be_v of_o earth_n and_o of_o mary_n flesh_n he_o take_v flesh_n et_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o ipsa_fw-la carne_fw-la hic_fw-la ambulavit_fw-la et_fw-la ipsam_fw-la carnem_fw-la nobis_fw-la manducandam_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o because_o he_o walk_v here_o in_o the_o same_o flesh_n and_o give_v to_o we_o the_o same_o flesh_n to_o eat_v for_o our_o salvation_n and_o no_o man_n eat_v that_o flesh_n but_o first_o he_o adore_v it_o we_o have_v find_v how_o such_o a_o footstool_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v be_v adore_v and_o not_o only_o we_o sin_v not_o in_o adore_v it_z but_o we_o sin_n in_o not_o adore_v it_z see_v now_o how_o proper_o fulk_n answer_v hereunto_o augustine_n in_o deed_n allow_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o that_o be_v a_o sacrament_n but_o neither_o can_v you_o prove_v out_o of_o that_o place_n that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o sacrament_n honour_v nor_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o the_o same_o flesh_n which_o he_o take_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o in_o which_o he_o walk_v be_v not_o his_o very_a body_n for_o the_o same_o say_v he_o we_o eat_v and_o we_o adore_v it_o before_o we_o eat_v bow_v and_o prostrate_v ourselves_o even_o to_o every_o particular_a holy_a host_n as_o now_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o know_v and_o as_o s._n augustine_n witness_v of_o his_o time_n for_o it_o follow_v in_o most_o manifest_a word_n et_fw-la ad_fw-la terram_fw-la quamlibet_fw-la cum_fw-la te_fw-la inclinas_fw-la atque_fw-la prosternis_fw-la non_fw-la quasi_fw-la terram_fw-la intuearis_fw-la and_o when_o thou_o do_v bow_v and_o prostrate_v thyself_o unto_o any_o earth_n do_v not_o consider_v as_o it_o be_v bare_a earth_n sed_fw-la illum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la but_o that_o holy_a one_o who_o footstool_n it_o be_v that_o thou_o adore_v et_fw-la cum_fw-la adoras_fw-la illum_fw-la ne_fw-la cogitation_n remaneas_fw-la in_o carne_fw-la also_o when_o thou_o adore_v he_o let_v not_o thy_o thought_n rest_n in_o flesh_n so_o as_o they_o that_o think_v the_o same_o a_o hard_a say_n unless_o a_o man_n eat_v my_o flesh_n 6._o joan._n 6._o he_o shall_v not_o have_v everlasting_a life_n acceperunt_fw-la illud_fw-la stultè_fw-la they_o take_v it_o foolish_o they_o think_v it_o carnal_o and_o imagine_v that_o our_o lord_n will_v cut_v off_o certain_a piece_n from_o his_o body_n and_o geve_v to_o they_o whereas_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v to_o themselves_o non_fw-la sine_fw-la causa_fw-la dicit_fw-la hoc_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o say_v not_o this_o without_o cause_n but_o because_o some_o hide_a sacrament_n be_v therein_o for_o so_o he_o instruct_v the_o twelve_o that_o do_v stick_v unto_o he_o when_o the_o other_o have_v for_o mislike_v that_o say_n play_v the_o apostate_n understand_v spiritual_o that_o which_o i_o speak_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v this_o body_n which_o you_o see_v and_o drink_v that_o blood_n which_o they_o shall_v shed_v that_o shall_v crucify_v i_o that_o be_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v it_o &_o drink_v it_o in_o such_o form_n so_o as_o these_o other_o imagine_v i_o commend_v unto_o you_o in_o those_o word_n some_o sacrament_n that_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v will_v give_v you_o life_n although_o needs_o it_o must_v be_v visible_o celebrate_v by_o the_o visible_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v invisible_o understand_v to_o be_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v in_o the_o celebration_n but_o which_o be_v not_o see_v to_o wit_n my_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n my_o very_a flesh_n take_v of_o the_o virgin_n in_o so_o much_o that_o young_a child_n infant_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n at_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 10._o august_n de_fw-fr trin._n lib._n 3._o ca._n 10._o be_v tell_v with_o most_o grave_a authority_n who_o body_n and_o blood_n it_o be_v will_v think_v nothing_o else_o but_o our_o lord_n very_o to_o have_v appear_v in_o that_o form_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n and_o that_o liquor_n very_o to_o have_v flow_v out_o of_o such_o a_o side_n be_v strike_v if_o they_o never_o learn_v by_o their_o own_o or_o other_o experience_n as_o strike_v it_o and_o yet_o no_o blood_n flow_v out_o of_o it_o and_o never_o see_v that_o form_n of_o thing_n but_o at_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n and_o minister_v to_o the_o receiver_n because_o they_o know_v not_o that_o which_o be_v set_v on_o the_o altar_n and_o after_o the_o holy_a canon_n be_v consume_v whence_o or_o how_o it_o be_v make_v by_o consecration_n like_v as_o no_o man_n know_v how_o the_o angel_n make_v or_o assumpt_v those_o cloud_n and_o fire_n to_o signify_v that_o which_o they_o do_v announce_v though_o the_o lord_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v show_v by_o those_o corporal_a form_n and_o therefore_o those_o child_n will_v imagine_v that_o christ_n appear_v here_o and_o suffer_v in_o no_o other_o form_n hear_v that_o this_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o us._n now_o come_v fulke_n and_o gather_v clean_o contrary_a to_o d._n allen_n as_o if_o s._n augustine_n say_v 309._o pur._n 309._o that_o these_o child_n will_v imagine_v nothing_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n whereas_o he_o say_v plain_o that_o hear_v thus_o his_o presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o it_o be_v his_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v they_o will_v imagine_v of_o no_o other_o form_n of_o his_o appear_v &_o suffer_v signify_v as_o plain_o that_o they_o need_v only_o to_o be_v instruct_v of_o his_o other_o form_n and_o not_o of_o any_o difference_n at_o all_o otherwise_o between_o himself_o in_o his_o appear_v and_o suffer_v and_o himself_o in_o this_o sacrament_n the_o next_o doctor_n may_v be_v justinus_n martyr_n of_o who_o word_n you_o gather_v against_o transubstantiation_n thus_o 60._o ar._n 60._o here_o he_o plain_o affirm_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o ●he_n sacrament_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o nourishment_n of_o our_o body_n therefore_o it_o remain_v still_o after_o consecration_n that_o will_v appear_v by_o his_o own_o word_n which_o be_v true_o translate_v be_v these_o in_o his_o second_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n to_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n antonius_n pius_n this_o meat_n with_o we_o be_v call_v eucharistia_n to_o the_o which_o none_o be_v admit_v but_o such_o as_o believe_v our_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o be_v wash_v with_o the_o laver_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o to_o regeneraration_n and_o so_o believe_v as_o christ_n have_v teach_v and_o why_o such_o reverence_n for_o we_o take_v not_o these_o as_o the_o common_a bread_n and_o a_o common_a cup_n but_o even_o as_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v through_o god_n word_n incarnate_a have_v flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o our_o salvation_n sic_fw-la etiam_fw-la per_fw-la verbum_fw-la precationis_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la est_fw-la sacratam_fw-la alimoniam_fw-la quae_fw-la mutata_fw-la nutrit_fw-la nostras_fw-la carnes_z &_o sanguinem_fw-la illius_fw-la incarnati_fw-la jesu_fw-la carnem_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la esse_fw-la didicimus_fw-la so_o we_o have_v learn_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o meat_n which_o be_v change_v nourish_v our_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v consecrate_v through_o his_o word_n of_o prayer_n be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o that_o jesus_n incarnate_a he_o say_v not_o here_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o nourishment_n of_o our_o body_n as_o you_o pretend_v but_o clean_o against_o you_o he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o flesh_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n see_v that_o every_o day_n usual_o they_o be_v turn_v by_o nature_n into_o our_o flesh_n and_o blood_n when_o we_o take_v they_o at_o dinner_n and_o supper_n for_o our_o nourishment_n and_o that_o to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o divine_a word_n see_v that_o by_o god_n word_n he_o take_v the_o same_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n 59_o ar._n 59_o you_o gather_v likewise_o of_o ireneus_fw-la his_o word_n and_o say_v here_o you_o see_v plain_o that_o ireneus_fw-la affirm_v the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o consecration_n to_o consist_v of_o the_o earthly_a substance_n of_o bread_n he_o do_v not_o so_o affirm_v he_o there_o treat_v against_o the_o old_a heretic_n who_o say_v 34._o iren._n li._n 4._o cap._n 34._o all_o these_o bodily_a creature_n yea_o and_o our_o own_o body_n also_o not_o to_o be_v of_o god_n make_v who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n but_o of_o another_o god_n who_o
next_o witness_n tertullian_n must_v not_o be_v beléeve_v because_o he_o express_v certain_a prayer_n which_o justinus_n do_v not_o and_o yet_o between_o they_o two_o you_o find_v no_o repugnance_n but_o set_v upon_o d._n allen_n as_o afore_o upon_o s._n chrysostome_n with_o they_o both_o at_o once_o say_v and_o where_o he_o say_v there_o be_v ever_o find_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n a_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o all_o the_o depart_v in_o christ_n to_o reprove_v his_o vanity_n the_o order_n of_o prayer_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n gentes_fw-la tert._n in_o apolog_n adversus_fw-la gentes_fw-la describe_v by_o justinus_n and_o of_o tertullian_n also_o do_v sufficient_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o usage_n of_o the_o christian_o in_o those_o pure_a time_n because_o there_o it_o be_v express_v for_o who_o and_o what_o they_o pray_v oramus_fw-la etiam_fw-la say_v tertullian_n pro_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la pro_fw-la ministris_fw-la eorum_fw-la &_o potestatibus_fw-la seculi_fw-la pro_fw-la rerum_fw-la quiet_a pro_fw-la mora_fw-la finis_fw-la we_o pray_v also_o for_o the_o emperor_n for_o their_o officer_n and_o power_n of_o the_o world_n for_o peace_n for_o delay_v of_o the_o end_n do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o in_o say_v we_o pray_v also_o for_o these_o he_o signify_v that_o these_o be_v some_o but_o not_o all_o they_o pray_v for_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v among_o other_o thing_n we_o pray_v for_o these_o which_o other_o thing_n he_o have_v not_o cause_n to_o express_v there_o as_o he_o have_v cause_n to_o express_v these_o to_o wit_n for_o that_o the_o christian_n be_v charge_v of_o the_o heathen_a thus_o deos_fw-la non_fw-la colitis_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la sacrificia_fw-la non_fw-la impenditis_fw-la first_o you_o do_v not_o worship_v the_o god_n second_o you_o do_v not_o bestow_v sacrifice_n with_o the_o heathen_a at_o certain_a appoint_a time_n for_o the_o emperor_n therefore_o make_v his_o apology_n he_o express_v the_o emperor_n &_o such_o person_n &_o thing_n as_o concern_v their_o roman_a empire_n as_o you_o may_v read_v more_o ample_o somewhat_o afore_o this_o be_v a_o clear_a answer_n and_o therefore_o enough_o how_o much_o more_o consider_v that_o yourself_o also_o confess_v that_o tertullian_n be_v against_o you_o 369._o pur._n 369._o in_o so_o much_o that_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o say_v to_o leave_v out_o of_o our_o service_n prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a we_o have_v sure_a warrant_n by_o example_n of_o the_o elder_a church_n &_o near_a to_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o we_o have_v show_v out_o of_o justinus_n martyr_n and_o tertullian_n before_o he_o become_v a_o heretic_n mean_v a_o montanist_n to_o which_o your_o cavil_n i_o have_v answer_v cap._n 6._o pag._n 49._o and_o therefore_o tertullian_n stand_v upright_o against_o you_o with_o your_o own_o confession_n more_o at_o large_a cap._n 3._o pag._n 15._o how_o much_o more_o again_o consider_v that_o about_o the_o very_a same_o time_n arnobius_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n write_v thus_o cur_n immaniter_fw-la nostra_fw-la conuenticula_fw-la meruerunt_fw-la dirui_fw-la finen_n arnob._n li._n 4_o contra_fw-la gentes_fw-la sub_fw-la finen_n etc._n etc._n why_o deserve_v our_o church_n to_o be_v pull_v down_o barbarous_o in_o which_o the_o high_a god_n be_v pray_v unto_o peace_n and_o pardon_n be_v ask_v for_o all_o man_n for_o the_o magistrate_n for_o friend_n for_o enemy_n for_o the_o live_n and_o for_o the_o dead_a so_o express_o he_o say_v to_o confound_v your_o argue_v out_o of_o other_o ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr you_o join_v tertullian_n to_o justinus_n the_o matter_n join_v also_o epiphanius_n to_o they_o of_o he_o you_o say_v 370._o pur._n 370._o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v gather_v by_o epiphanius_n that_o the_o old_a form_n of_o liturgy_n be_v but_o to_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o dead_a to_o have_v they_o in_o remembrance_n and_o because_o they_o use_v to_o make_v memory_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o be_v dead_a in_o christ_n he_o expound_v it_o according_a to_o the_o error_n of_o his_o time_n that_o this_o memory_n be_v a_o prayer_n for_o the_o sinner_n for_o the_o just_a as_o patriarch_n prophet_n etc._n etc._n a_o signification_n that_o they_o be_v inferior_a to_o christ_n a_o simple_a cause_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v remember_v so_o that_o neither_o the_o old_a form_n of_o liturgy_n like_v you_o in_o remember_v the_o dead_a at_o all_o puritan_n will_v you_o see_v a_o pure_a puritan_n no_o more_o than_o the_o old_a oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a though_o they_o be_v only_a oblation_n of_o thanksgiving_n for_o they_o be_v take_v up_o of_o the_o church_n in_o tertullian_n and_o montanus_n time_n by_o perverse_a emulation_n of_o the_o gentile_n so_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o pag._n 53._o but_o this_o shift_n epiphanius_n be_v drive_v unto_o because_o he_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o memory_n and_o oblation_n which_o the_o old_a father_n make_v for_o all_o the_o depart_a in_o christ_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanks_o give_v and_o not_o of_o prayer_n for_o they_o and_o again_o they_o have_v in_o deed_n in_o elder_a time_n 356._o pur._n 356._o as_o appear_v by_o epiphanius_n the_o name_n of_o oblation_n but_o it_o be_v for_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n which_o plain_o show_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o offering_n of_o thanks_o give_v you_o be_v deceive_v by_o think_v that_o it_o be_v but_o one_o memory_n whereof_o epiphanius_n speak_v look_v in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n james_n as_o also_o of_o s._n basil_n and_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n &_o diverse_a place_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v two_o distinct_a memory_n and_o therefore_o epiphanius_n say_v 1._o epip_n hier._n 75._o aerij_fw-la li._n 3._o tom_n 1._o et_fw-la pro_fw-la iustis_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la peccatoribus_fw-la memoriam_fw-la facimus_fw-la both_o for_o the_o just_a and_o for_o the_o sinner_n we_o make_v memory_n and_o that_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o he_o there_o say_v against_o your_o friend_n aerius_n pro_fw-la peccatoribus_fw-la quidem_fw-la misericordiam_fw-la dei_fw-la implorantes_fw-la for_o sinner_n pardie_o request_v god_n mercy_n which_o be_v not_o his_o exposition_n as_o you_o pretend_v but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o tradition_n that_o be_v of_o the_o memory_n itself_o pro_fw-la iustis_fw-la verò_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o the_o just_a both_o father_n and_o patriarch_n prophet_n and_o apostle_n evangelist_n martyr_n and_o confessor_n bishop_n also_o and_o anchoretes_n and_o for_o every_o order_n ut_fw-la d._n i._n christum_fw-la ab_fw-la hominum_fw-la ordine_fw-la separemus_fw-la to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v separate_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n from_o man_n order_n ponder_v in_o our_o mind_n that_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o egalled_a to_o any_o man_n although_o a_o thousand_o time_n &_o upward_o that_o man_n do_v live_v in_o justice_n for_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o he_o be_v god_n and_o the_o other_o be_v a_o man_n which_o reason_n of_o his_o be_v to_o deep_a for_o your_o divinity_n he_o see_v that_o the_o like_a memory_n may_v be_v make_v also_o for_o our_o lord_n himself_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o thanks_o give_v and_o therefore_o not_o be_v make_v for_o he_o likewise_o he_o conceive_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v another_o reason_n therein_o so_o to_o separate_v the_o just_a from_o christ_n &_o not_o only_o the_o sinner_n from_o the_o just_a although_o otherwise_o when_o the_o just_a &_o the_o sinner_n be_v not_o separate_v but_o join_v both_o together_o in_o some_o one_o collet_n of_o the_o church_n than_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v ca._n 3._o pag._n 16._o the_o same_o one_o collet_n be_v at_o once_o a_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sinner_n and_o a_o thanks_o give_v for_o the_o just_a now_o to_o the_o place_n of_o origen_n which_o be_v another_o of_o your_o trump_n that_o you_o trust_v so_o much_o in_o 249.427_o pur._n 249.427_o say_v this_o one_o testimony_n of_o origen_n shall_v testify_v what_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v concern_v purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o his_o day_n and_o yet_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o confess_v not_o only_o thus_o in_o the_o same_o place_n i_o wot_v well_o superstition_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v somewhat_o forward_a but_o also_o of_o origen_n himself_o in_o another_o place_n 3._o pur._n 116._o orig._n in_o je._n ho._n 12._o in_o num._n ho._n 25._o in_o psal_n 36._o ho._n 3._o ori._n in_o job._n lib._n 3._o &_o to_o say_v but_o howsoever_o he_o dote_v about_o passage_n through_o fire_n and_o purification_n after_o this_o life_n yet_o he_o affirm_v in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o day_n of_o christian_a man_n death_n be_v the_o deposition_n of_o pain_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o either_o he_o be_v not_o constant_a with_o himself_o or_o else_o that_o
occasion_n 24._o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n 7._o mot._n 21.38_o article_n 13._o heb._n 7._o in_o the_o 24._o demand_n be_v of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n i_o touch_v your_o apostasy_n at_o the_o very_a root_n for_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o priesthood_n be_v translate_v from_o aaron_n and_o they_o of_o his_o order_n to_o melchisedec_n or_o christ_n and_o they_o of_o his_o order_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o translation_n of_o the_o law_n also_o be_v make_v that_o your_o heresy_n of_o caluinisme_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a heresy_n that_o be_v a_o corruption_n of_o christianity_n in_o one_o or_o two_o point_n but_o a_o mutation_n of_o the_o whole_a new_a law_n almost_o of_o christ_n it_o come_v of_o this_o i_o say_v that_o you_o have_v make_v a_o mutation_n of_o the_o new_a priesthood_n and_o that_o you_o have_v change_v the_o new_a priesthood_n or_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n i_o show_v because_o you_o have_v change_v our_o catholic_a priesthood_n for_o this_o priesthood_n wherein_o we_o serve_v come_v to_o we_o from_o no_o other_o but_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o priesthood_n that_o they_o delyver_v our_o forefather_n and_o we_o have_v to_o this_o day_n keep_v the_o same_o unchaunged_a to_o be_v perspicuous_a i_o come_v to_o particulares_fw-la first_o the_o very_a apostolic_a name_n episcopus_fw-la and_o presbyter_n note_n note_n that_o be_v bishop_n and_o priest_n we_o never_o go_v about_o to_o change_v they_o you_o have_v labour_v to_o change_v they_o into_o these_o superintendent_n and_o elder_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o you_o have_v change_v the_o apostolic_a order_n as_o it_o follow_v the_o apostle_n to_o have_v change_v the_o aaronicall_a order_n because_o they_o change_v the_o former_a name_n pontifex_n &_o sacerdos_n for_o which_o we_o have_v no_o english_a i_o touch_v this_o here_o afore_o in_o the_o .6_o dem._n pag._n 231._o and_o you_o have_v not_o where_o answer_v it_o but_o i_o find_v where_o you_o have_v holpen_v it_o for_o whereas_o the_o father_n keep_v those_o new_a name_n 21._o isa_n 66._o s_o 21._o yet_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o esay_n use_v evermore_o also_o the_o former_a name_n consider_v that_o the_o new_a order_n no_o less_o than_o the_o old_a be_v a_o true_a species_n of_o that_o genus_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la &_o whereas_o we_o according_o do_v in_o translate_n put_v the_o english_a word_n priest_n not_o only_o for_o presbyter_n 283._o pur._n 283._o but_o also_o for_o sacerdos_n you_o sir_n translate_n a_o passage_n of_o s._n cyprian_n do_v put_v the_o priest_n twice_o where_o he_o put_v sacerdotes_fw-la but_o where_o he_o put_v presbyterum_fw-la you_o shun_v the_o word_n priest_n which_o be_v the_o very_a same_o and_o put_v your_o new_a invent_a word_n a_o elder_a second_o you_o help_v another_o argument_n of_o we_o where_o you_o say_v i_o will_v desire_v none_o other_o place_n in_o all_o the_o scripture_n 297._o ar._n 29._o pur._n 297._o to_o overthrow_v the_o popish_a hierarchy_n which_o be_v the_o grete_a glory_n of_o their_o church_n than_o this_o place_n of_o paul_n eph._n 4._o he_o speak_v of_o apostle_n evangelist_n prophet_n pastor_n &_o teacher_n but_o where_o be_v popish_a bishop_n priest_n deacon_n subdeacons_n exorcist_n cantor_n or_o lector_n acolytes_n ostiares_n by_o this_o you_o declare_v that_o you_o have_v change_v the_o order_n hierarchy_n or_o priesthood_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n wherein_o as_o it_o be_v infinite_o 34._o eus_n li._n 6._o ca._n 34._o witness_v &_o you_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o same_o degree_n be_v which_o here_o you_o call_v popish_a and_o do_v not_o s._n paul_n himself_o in_o other_o place_n make_v express_a mention_n of_o bishop_n priest_n &_o deacon_n and_o so_o you_o may_v aswell_o by_o your_o wise_a reason_n out_o of_o ephe._n 4._o overthrow_n s._n paul_n hierarchy_n who_o also_o in_o the_o name_n of_o deacon_n 1._o tim._n 3._o include_v subdeacons_n and_n the_o other_o inferior_n as_o in_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n tit._n 1._o he_o include_v likewise_o deacon_n themselves_o and_o the_o like_a be_v common_a in_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o yet_o because_o deacon_n or_o minister_n be_v a_o distinct_a order_n 251._o sup._n p._n 251._o do_v like_o better_a to_o call_v all_o under_o priest_n by_o the_o name_n of_o levite_n 383._o pur._n 383._o because_o that_o be_v the_o general_a term_n in_o the_o old_a law_n of_o all_o the_o variety_n of_o they_o that_o be_v not_o sacerdotes_fw-la &_o to_o call_v all_o to-togeth_a clerum_fw-la the_o clergy_n or_o in_o clericos_fw-la or_o in_o clericali_fw-la ministerio_fw-la constitutos_fw-la 66_o ●yp_n ep_v 66_o or_o ad_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la clericalem_fw-la promotos_fw-la all_o which_o term_v s._n cyprian_n have_v in_o one_o epistle_n with_o the_o name_n of_o episcopus_fw-la and_o presbyter_n &_o sacerdos_n common_a to_o they_o both_o and_o it_o be_v but_o your_o ignorance_n to_o think_v that_o s._n paul_n shall_v have_v name_v they_o eph._n 4._o consider_v that_o he_o speak_v there_o only_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n only_o of_o preacher_n ut_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la circumferamur_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o we_o be_v not_o now_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n whereas_o these_o other_o be_v belong_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v two_o distinct_a office_n as_o you_o may_v see_v act._n 13._o where_o some_o preacher_n have_v not_o order_n as_o yet_o &_o 1_o tim._n 5._o where_o some_o good_a priest_n do_v not_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n three_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n &_o priest_n be_v make_v by_o other_o bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o also_o with_o we_o it_o continue_v to_o this_o day_n but_o you_o be_v only_o of_o lay_v man_n make_n as_o of_o king_n and_o other_o civil_a magistrate_n i_o pass_v over_o the_o difference_n of_o live_v single_a &_o marry_v as_o a_o thing_n extrinsical_a &_o touch_v before_o in_o the_o .21_o dem._n 250._o pag._n 250._o four_o yourselves_o confess_v our_o order_n to_o be_v good_a enough_o in_o that_o have_v be_v order_v by_o we_o you_o seek_v not_o to_o be_v reorder_v as_o cranmer_n parker_n grindall_n sand_n horn_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o we_o as_o you_o know_v account_v your_o order_n for_o no_o order_n 50.51_o ar._n 50.51_o to_o this_o you_o say_v you_o be_v high_o deceive_v if_o you_o think_v we_o esteem_v your_o office_n of_o bishop_n priest_n deacon_n any_o better_a than_o the_o state_n of_o lay_v man_n for_o we_o receive_v none_o of_o they_o to_o minister_v in_o our_o church_n except_o they_o forswear_v your_o religion_n &_o so_o their_o admission_n be_v a_o new_a call_n to_o the_o ministry_n how_o true_a it_o be_v that_o you_o receive_v none_o otherwise_o i_o pass_v that_o over_o but_o sir_n order_n a_o new_a way_n to_o give_v order_n we_o also_o make_v your_o minister_n to_o abjure_v &_o yet_o after_o that_o they_o be_v but_o lie_v man_n still_o and_o i_o will_v ask_v you_o if_o two_o catholic_n abjure_v with_o you_o one_o a_o lay_z man_n the_o other_o a_o priest_n be_v they_o both_o priest_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la o_o your_o divinity_n o_o your_o scripture_n as_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n &_o matrimony_n we_o do_v not_o iterate_v they_o after_o you_o though_o we_o supply_v the_o ceremony_n because_o a_o bishop_n or_o a_o priest_n be_v not_o the_o necessary_a &_o sole_a minister_n of_o they_o as_o he_o be_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n &_o of_o our_o lord_n body_n which_o be_v a_o sound_a cause_n than_o you_o of_o retain_v the_o form_n of_o word_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n take_v not_o their_o effect_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o of_o god_n for_o hereuppon_o you_o allow_v you_o say_v our_o baptism_n if_o that_o be_v enough_o what_o need_v abiur_v yea_o belike_o with_o you_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n if_o a_o lay_v man_n or_o wooman_n also_o retain_v the_o word_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n take_v their_o effect_n of_o god_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o deny_v the_o priesthood_n and_o so_o to_o run_v headlong_o to_o apostasy_n as_o that_o also_o where_o to_o defend_v pilkinton_n not_o to_o be_v a_o mock_n bishop_n 72._o pur._n 343.428_o ar._n 72._o you_o bring_v no_o more_o but_o his_o excellent_a learning_n and_o diligent_a preach_n inuey_v against_o our_o catholic_a bishop_n as_o unlearned_a or_o unpreaching_a and_o therefore_o no_o bishop_n whereas_o in_o deed_n we_o that_o know_v both_o side_n by_o experience_n can_v true_o testify_v that_o in_o catholic_a country_n where_o your_o desolation_n can_v not_o yet_o remove_v the_o order_n of_o seculare_fw-la and_o religious_a preacher_n there_o be_v more_o preach_v to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o stuff_n in_o so_o many_o church_n for_o so_o many_o in_o one_o year_n
can_v doubt_v but_o this_o present_a plague_n and_o thraldom_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v fall_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o like_a or_o worse_o to_o fall_v upon_o the_o like_a for_o their_o depart_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v foretell_v they_o full_a often_o though_o you_o count_v it_o false_a and_o unreasonable_a so_o to_o say_v and_o why_o 396._o pur._n 396._o because_o the_o africans_n be_v plague_v and_o subvert_v for_o other_o sin_n so_o substantial_a be_v your_o reason_n as_o if_o you_o will_v say_v ten_o tribe_n be_v not_o subvert_v for_o their_o schism_n because_o the_o two_o tribe_n be_v subvert_v for_o other_o sin_n 29._o tradition_n 9_o motive_n 9_o the_o 29._o demand_n mention_v that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v to_o the_o church_n not_o only_a scripture_n as_o fulke_n will_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n here_o cap._n 8._o pag._n 100_o to_o 110._o and_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 171._o to_o 183._o which_o all_o i_o have_v answer_v but_o also_o unwritten_a tradition_n whereof_o no_o one_o be_v against_o we_o and_o many_o of_o they_o so_o direct_o against_o the_o protestant_n that_o although_o he_o confess_v they_o as_o for_o example_n the_o memory_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o have_v the_o most_o approve_a father_n testimony_n to_o be_v tradition_n apostolic_a here_o cap._n 3._o pag._n 15._o to_o 20._o yet_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o deny_v that_o either_o they_o or_o any_o tradition_n at_o all_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n ca._n 7._o pa._n 80._o to_o 89._o so_o as_o never_o do_v the_o catholic_n i_o say_v in_o this_o demand_n but_o only_a heretic_n 383.409.412_o pur._n 383.409.412_o but_o against_o this_o i_o find_v that_o he_o allege_v a_o say_n of_o s._n irene_n as_o though_o by_o his_o judgement_n we_o rather_o be_v valentinian_n heretic_n who_o with_o the_o father_n here_o cap._n 3._o &_o 7._o pag._n 19_o &_o 84._o beside_o scripture_n do_v hold_v with_o tradition_n of_o unwritten_a verity_n and_o lord_n how_o he_o crow_v against_o d._n allen_n for_o allege_v the_o same_o say_n against_o the_o protestant_n upon_o their_o deny_v of_o the_o machabée_n not_o consider_v that_o by_o s._n irenée_n there_o they_o no_o more_o be_v heretic_n who_o will_v have_v tradition_n than_o they_o who_o will_v have_v scripture_n 2.3_o iren._n li._n 3._o ca._n 2.3_o s._n irenée_n himself_o as_o all_o catholic_n will_v have_v both_o but_o those_o old_a heretic_n will_v in_o effect_n say_v he_o have_v neither_o neque_fw-la scripture_n iam_fw-la neque_fw-la traditioni_fw-la consentire_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o will_v yield_v neither_o to_o the_o scripture_n nor_o to_o tradition_n for_o when_o they_o be_v confute_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n they_o turn_v to_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o as_o though_o they_o be_v corrupt_v nor_o be_v not_o canonical_a and_o that_o they_o be_v ambiguous_a and_o that_o out_o of_o they_o can_v not_o be_v find_v the_o sincere_a truth_n by_o such_o as_o know_v not_o the_o tradition_n because_o that_o be_v not_o deliver_v by_o writing_n but_o a_o certain_a mingle_v mangle_v and_o the_o sincere_a truth_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n well_o then_o say_v the_o catholic_a let_v we_o hardly_o try_v by_o tradition_n what_o do_v they_o then_o they_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n either_o themselves_o know_v not_o all_o thing_n or_o that_o they_o teach_v their_o successor_n of_o one_o sort_n in_o open_a place_n and_o these_o man_n patriarch_n in_o secret_a of_o another_o sort_n cum_fw-la autem_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la iterum_fw-la traditionem_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o when_o again_o to_o that_o tradition_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v conserve_v in_o the_o church_n by_o succession_n of_o the_o priest_n we_o provoke_v those_o heretic_n who_o be_v adversary_n to_o tradition_n as_o the_o former_a be_v to_o scripture_n they_o will_v say_v that_o they_o be_v wise_a than_o not_o only_o the_o priest_n but_o also_o the_o apostle_n have_v find_v the_o sincere_a truth_n aduersus_fw-la tale_n certamen_fw-la nobis_fw-la est_fw-la o_fw-la dilectissime_fw-la against_o such_o we_o have_v to_o fight_v o_o my_o dear_a who_o as_o slippery_a as_o snake_n seek_v on_o every_o side_n to_o fly_v what_o way_n shall_v we_o then_o take_v with_o they_o traditionem_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la manifestatam_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la adest_fw-la perspicere_fw-la omnibus_fw-la qui_fw-la vera_fw-la velint_fw-la audire_fw-la he_o that_o listen_v to_o hear_v lie_n may_v seek_v to_o these_o heretic_n and_o the_o secret_a tradition_n which_o they_o pretend_v but_o all_o that_o will_v hear_v the_o truth_n may_v in_o the_o church_n see_v the_o apostle_n tradition_n which_o be_v publish_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n et_fw-la habemus_fw-la annumerare_fw-la and_o we_o can_v rehearse_v they_o who_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n even_o unto_o us._n who_o teach_v nor_o know_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o man_n dote_v upon_o for_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v know_v strange_a mystery_n which_o they_o teach_v the_o perfect_a seorsim_fw-la &_o latenter_fw-la ab_fw-la reliquis_fw-la apart_o from_o the_o rest_n and_o privily_o no_o doubt_n they_o will_v have_v commit_v they_o special_o to_o those_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v also_o the_o church_n and_o then_o because_o it_o be_v to_o long_o he_o say_v to_o rehearse_v all_o succession_n he_o reckon_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o paul_n in_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a and_o know_v to_o all_o man_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o tradition_n which_o she_o have_v from_o the_o apostle_n come_v even_o unto_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n we_o report_v confundimus_fw-la omnes_fw-la eos_fw-la do_v confound_v all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n et_fw-la est_fw-la plenissima_fw-la haec_fw-la ostensio_fw-la and_o this_o be_v a_o most_o full_a demonstration_n that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o quicken_a faith_n which_o from_o the_o apostle_n be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n till_o now_o and_o deliver_v in_o truth_n loe_o now_o sir_n who_o have_v such_o ill_a grace_n to_o allege_v the_o doctor_n against_o himself_o for_o who_o deni_v here_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 165._o the_o authority_n of_o such_o scripture_n as_o be_v canonize_v by_o the_o church_n which_o himself_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n who_o also_o refuse_v the_o tradition_n and_o say_v i_o say_v not_o by_o those_o heretic_n pretend_v but_o even_o of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n even_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o not_o now_o only_o but_o then_o also_o when_v yourself_o do_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o for_o we_o we_o reject_v neither_o the_o churches_n scripture_n nor_o the_o church_n tradition_n but_o answer_v all_o that_o you_o detort_v to_o maintain_v your_o heresy_n and_o restore_v it_o to_o the_o right_a meaning_n 30_o their_o own_o doctor_n 16._o motive_n 16._o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o man_n and_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o they_o be_v against_o our_o protestant_n and_o in_o no_o point_n with_o they_o against_o we_o it_o be_v many_o way_n show_v by_o the_o aforesaid_a beside_o all_o these_o i_o note_v in_o the_o next_o demand_n also_o their_o own_o master_n and_o fellow_n namely_o luther_n and_o caluine_n to_o have_v condemn_v they_o such_o leader_n have_v our_o miserable_a country_n choose_v to_o follow_v forsake_v the_o sure_a guydance_n of_o god_n church_n in_o which_o our_o forefather_n together_o with_o the_o catholic_n of_o all_o other_o country_n so_o many_o age_n before_o prosper_v in_o earth_n and_o achieve_v to_o heaven_n 31.32.33_o universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_v in_o three_o demand_n follow_v i_o do_v show_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_v teach_v by_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o the_o other_o father_n do_v make_v for_o we_o and_o against_o the_o protestant_n which_o be_v so_o plain_a that_o fulke_n be_v fain_o to_o refuse_v those_o rule_n abuse_v a_o say_n of_o s._n augustine_n as_o it_o be_v for_o only_a scripture_n against_o they_o here_o cap._n 7._o pag._n 80._o and_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 180._o 15.26_o motive_n 10.11.28_o arti._n 15.26_o 34._o authority_n the_o protestant_n find_v the_o primitive_a church_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o deny_v but_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n here_o cap._n 2._o to_o be_v in_o many_o point_n so_o plain_o against_o they_o that_o they_o must_v confess_v it_o themselves_o as_o here_o cap._n 3_o do_v hold_v that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v err_v universal_o and_o also_o do_v err_v cap._n 3.4_o and_o therefore_o make_v their_o exception_n against_o it_o also_o cap._n 7._o pa._n 89._o and_o that_o with_o pretence_n of_o scripture_n to_o warrant_v their_o so_o do_v cap._n 8._o pag._n 117._o unto_o which_o i_o have_v full_o answer_v hereupon_o in_o my_o 34._o dem._n i_o affirm_v
heresy_n not_o preach_v against_o wink_v at_o because_o it_o have_v a_o show_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n and_o at_o length_n allow_v of_o augustine_n and_o other_o who_o follow_v the_o common_a error_n of_o their_o time_n special_o when_o a_o general_n defection_n and_o depart_n from_o the_o faith_n be_v foreshow_v what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o none_o can_v preach_v against_o it_o as_o it_o first_o enter_v 92.36.37_o ar._n 92.36.37_o contra_fw-la the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o place_n as_o she_o be_v suffer_v no_o man_n damnable_o abuse_v her_o religion_n without_o open_a reprehension_n 11._o ar._n 11._o 10_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n have_v always_o resist_v all_o false_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o her_o duty_n be_v and_o fight_v against_o they_o and_o obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o triumph_v over_o they_o 35.36_o pur._n 419._o ar._n 35.36_o contra_fw-la in_o those_o ancient_a time_n they_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n do_v not_o always_o weigh_v what_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o heretic_n have_v any_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o show_n of_o piety_n or_o charity_n they_o will_v draw_v it_o into_o use_n so_o they_o take_v into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n many_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n until_o at_o the_o length_n an._n 607._o the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n prevail_v and_o c_o since_o that_o time_n that_o devilish_a heresy_n have_v always_o increase_v in_o error_n until_o the_o year_n 1414._o 11_o that_o blasphemous_a heresy_n of_o purgatory_n 26.166.184.177.269.362.363.419.186_o to_o the_o reader_n pu._n 26.166.184.177.269.362.363.419.186_o which_o be_v most_o blasphemous_a against_o christ_n against_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n against_o his_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o against_o god_n unspeakable_a mercy_n and_o occasion_n of_o most_o licentious_a wickedness_n in_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v it_o nothing_o convenient_a for_o the_o disciple_n &_o member_n of_o christ_n no_o suffrage_n be_v make_v for_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o apostle_n or_o their_o lawful_a successor_n contra_fw-la here_o cap._n 3._o he_o confess_v that_o the_o father_n hold_v it_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n ca._n 2._o and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n jesus_n christ_n cap._n 5._o and_o all_o the_o substance_n of_o true_a doctrine_n 393.405_o doctrine_n pur._n 393.405_o and_o also_o that_o they_o do_v invocate_v saint_n deny_v in_o other_o 139.140_o other_o supr_fw-la pa._n 139.140_o place_n that_o such_o be_v true_a christian_n the_o like_a 141._o like_a su._n p._n 141._o of_o fast_v 12_o 51.26.166.177.184_o 12_o pur._n 51.26.166.177.184_o the_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n &_o satisfaction_n of_o sin_n after_o this_o life_n be_v the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o licentiousness_n to_o maintain_v wicked_a man_n in_o their_o presumptuousnes_n for_o what_o haste_n will_v they_o make_v to_o amendment_n &_o newness_n of_o life_n when_o they_o have_v hope_n of_o release_n after_o their_o death_n contra_fw-la as_o s._n augustine_n say_v 448._o pur._n 448._o it_o be_v but_o for_o small_a fault_n or_o as_o m._n allen_n say_v for_o great_a fault_n that_o by_o penance_n be_v make_v small_a and_o be_v god_n such_o a_o merciful_a father_n to_o punish_v small_a fault_n so_o extreme_o in_o his_o child_n who_o he_o pardon_v of_o all_o their_o great_a and_o heinous_a sin_n o_o blasphemous_a hellhound_n see_v how_o vehement_a he_o be_v in_o contradict_v himself_o to_o justify_v that_o say_n of_o d._n allens_n i_o be_o well_o assure_v there_o dare_v no_o man_n 150._o pur._n 150._o though_o he_o be_v destitute_a of_o god_n grace_n yet_o not_o for_o shame_n of_o himself_o affirm_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v hurtful_a to_o virtuous_a life_n consider_v that_o people_n with_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o to_o escape_v hell_n itself_o they_o must_v do_v much_o more_o than_o the_o protestant_n require_v and_o more_o again_o to_o escape_v purgatory_n according_a to_o s._n augustine_n threaten_v here_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 212._o 13_o how_o long_o soever_o the_o true_a church_n be_v hide_v 1._o ar._n 73._o supra_fw-la ca._n 1._o whether_o it_o be_v a_o 1000_o year_n or_o 2000_o year_n this_o be_v certain_a that_o out_o of_o this_o church_n none_o can_v be_v save_v contra_fw-la here_o ca._n 5._o he_o count_v it_o enough_o if_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o salvation_n be_v in_o the_o only_a foundation_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o agree_v to_o man_n in_o deed_n out_o of_o the_o church_n 238._o ar._n 61_o 74._o pur._n 238._o 14_o they_o which_o hold_v the_o foundation_n that_o be_v christ_n to_o wit_n the_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n be_v doubtless_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n contra_fw-la here_o cap._n 10._o pag._n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o anabaptiste_n be_v abominable_a heretic_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o protestant_n who_o yet_o do_v hold_v that_o article_n jump_v as_o the_o protestant_n do_v 71.78.79.80_o ar._n 36.38_o ar._n 71.78.79.80_o 15_o a_o general_a depart_n from_o the_o faith_n be_v foreshow_v and_o it_o be_v fulfil_v an._n 607._o contra_fw-la the_o church_n be_v never_o lose_v neither_o when_o the_o depart_n be_v general_n but_o hide_a in_o the_o wilderness_n that_o be_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n she_o be_v to_o this_o day_n preserve_v and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n christ_n have_v never_o want_v his_o spouse_n in_o earth_n he_o have_v never_o be_v a_o head_n without_o a_o body_n 2.96.26.27_o ar._n 2.96.26.27_o 16_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v continue_v unto_o this_o day_n by_o succession_n not_o of_o person_n and_o place_n but_o of_o doctrine_n faith_n and_o truth_n these_o very_a word_n contain_v a_o manifest_a contradiction_n for_o how_o can_v a_o church_n or_o doctrine_n faith_n and_o truth_n continue_v but_o in_o person_n and_o place_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o say_v also_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o god_n have_v always_o stir_v up_o some_o faithful_a teacher_n that_o have_v instruct_v his_o church_n in_o the_o necessary_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n 15.79_o ar._n 15.79_o 17_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o stand_v steadfast_a &_o inseparable_a from_o christ_n her_o head_n though_o the_o blind_a world_n when_o they_o see_v she_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v she_o to_o be_v his_o spouse_n but_o persecute_v she_o as_o if_o she_o be_v a_o adulteress_n contra_fw-la in_o the_o same_o place_n the_o true_a church_n under_o the_o emperor_n constantinus_n constans_n and_o valens_n be_v great_o infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n and_o in_o another_o place_n 79._o ar._n 79._o the_o visible_a church_n may_v become_v a_o adultress_n and_o be_v divorce_v from_o christ_n and_o so_o be_v that_o faithful_a church_n of_o rome_n become_v a_o harlot_n 79._o ar._n 79._o 18_o the_o true_a church_n consist_v of_o god_n elect_v and_o the_o lively_a member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v never_o commit_v such_o adultery_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o visible_a church_n may_v separate_v herself_o from_o christ_n as_o though_o there_o be_v another_o church_n beside_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o so_o two_o church_n 65._o ar._n 65._o contra_fw-la wheresoever_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v in_o part_n it_o be_v one_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o in_o deed_n there_o be_v never_o no_o church_n but_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o other_o be_v but_o a_o imagination_n of_o the_o protestant_n to_o delude_v the_o world_n withal_o as_o though_o luther_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o appear_v with_o he_o have_v afore_o their_o appear_v be_v secret_a protestant_n whereas_o in_o deed_n they_o be_v open_a papist_n 19_o anno_fw-la 607._o the_o church_n flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n that_o be_v 16.27.79.36_o ar._n 16.27.79.36_o out_o of_o the_o sight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o world_n there_o to_o remain_v a_o long_a season_n where_o all_o this_o while_n god_n have_v preserve_v she_o until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o think_v good_a now_o in_o our_o day_n to_o bring_v she_o out_o of_o her_o secret_a place_n in_o the_o wilderness_n into_o the_o open_a sight_n of_o the_o world_n again_o contra_fw-la 77._o ar._n 77._o diverse_a time_n it_o be_v bold_a to_o challenge_v preach_v and_o minister_a of_o the_o sacrament_n yea_o and_o so_o bold_o that_o it_o cost_v many_o of_o the_o challenger_n their_o life_n as_o berengarius_fw-la bruno_n marsilius_n de_fw-fr padua_n joannes_n de_fw-fr gaudano_n joannes_n wickleve_v walden_n joannes_n hus_n jeronymus_n de_fw-fr praga_n etc._n etc._n where_o beside_o his_o manifest_a contradiction_n i_o note_v two_o thing_n against_o he_o one_o that_o it_o cost_v not_o all_o these_o yea_o very_o few_o of_o these_o
damn_v reply_n damn_v fulke_o will_v avouch_v this_o out_o of_o heb._n v._o in_o his_o reply_n for_o ever_o also_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o beast_n as_o d._n allen_n do_v most_o worthy_o call_v he_o for_o it_o against_o our_o saviour_n corporal_a death_n which_o be_v his_o only_a death_n and_o that_o in_o many_o of_o his_o impious_a book_n and_o namely_o in_o that_o catechism_n which_o they_o have_v join_v with_o their_o french_a bibles_n in_o the_o end_n belike_o that_o it_o may_v among_o fool_n creep_v in_o time_n into_o canonical_a authority_n as_o already_o luther_n with_o the_o lutheran_n and_o caluine_n with_o the_o caluiniste_n be_v peer_n to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o for_o touch_v of_o this_o doctrine_n it_o be_v that_o fulke_n more_o zealous_a for_o caluine_v then_o for_o christ_n goulp_v up_o such_o gear_n against_o d._n allen_n as_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v in_o the_o place_n falsify_v also_o d._n allens_n word_n because_o otherwise_o he_o have_v no_o mark_n to_o shoot_v at_o as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v caluine_a to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n go_v down_o into_o hell_n after_o his_o death_n whereas_o d._n allen_n say_v nothing_o of_o the_o time_n when_o he_o descend_v by_o caluin_n but_o only_o of_o the_o hell-like_a torment_n which_o caluine_n build_v upon_o his_o descend_v howbeit_o i_o will_v ask_v fulke_n why_o it_o be_v such_o a_o mystery_n that_o christ_n soul_n be_v in_o damnation_n for_o the_o time_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o also_o and_o rather_o after_o his_o death_n for_o the_o time_n until_o his_o resurrection_n special_o consider_v that_o in_o the_o créede_v crucifixus_fw-la go_v before_o sepultus_fw-la and_o descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la follow_v sepultus_fw-la as_o also_o common_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o time_n of_o his_o soul_n in_o hell_n be_v make_v concurrant_fw-la with_o the_o time_n of_o his_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n and_o who_o see_v not_o thereby_o that_o the_o catholic_n interpretation_n be_v also_o most_o natural_a and_o proper_a that_o after_o mortuus_fw-la which_o signify_v the_o separation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o soul_n by_o death_n follow_v sepultus_fw-la to_o show_v where_o his_o body_n be_v afterwards_o &_o descendit_fw-la ad_fw-la inferos_fw-la to_o tell_v where_o his_o soul_n be_v afterwards_o though_o not_o in_o damnation_n according_a to_o these_o man_n new_a blasphemy_n until_o both_o be_v conjoin_v again_o in_o his_o resurrection_n as_o there_o it_o follow_v immediate_o tertia_fw-la die_fw-la resurrexit_fw-la a_o mortuis_fw-la thus_o i_o be_o fain_a to_o stand_v long_o upon_o every_o point_n be_v it_o never_o so_o absurd_a and_o impious_a against_o our_o lord_n god_n himself_o and_o against_o our_o only_a redemption_n in_o his_o blood_n for_o they_o can_v wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o such_o point_n also_o we_o shall_v i_o think_v afore_o now_o if_o this_o point_n of_o christ_n damnation_n for_o our_o redemption_n have_v not_o be_v by_o diverse_a catholic_n so_o handle_v to_o their_o shame_n have_v have_v that_o other_o point_n likewise_o of_o some_o caluiniste_n make_v more_o common_a that_o christ_n also_o do_v despeire_n in_o god_n or_o blaspheme_v god_n or_o commit_v some_o other_o sin_n against_o god_n for_o our_o redemption_n 12._o synod_n gen_n 5._o sesse_n 4._o &_o sesse_n 8._o ca._n 12._o for_o i_o see_v not_o but_o they_o be_v already_o come_v to_o say_v with_o that_o old_a most_o detestable_a blasphemous_a heretic_n theodorus_n mopsuestenus_n master_n to_o nestorius_n that_o he_o have_v in_o he_o fomitem_fw-la peccati_fw-la inclination_n to_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o from_o his_o conception_n impeccabilis_fw-la that_o be_v unsinable_a consider_v they_o say_v he_o fear_v to_o be_v damn_v for_o ever_o unless_o they_o will_v say_v that_o he_o be_v so_o ignorant_a to_o fear_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v unpossible_a to_o befall_v unto_o he_o which_o yet_o themselves_o can_v not_o fear_v because_o of_o their_o special_a faith_n forsooth_o 290.296.298_o pur._n 290.296.298_o o_o lord_n these_o blasphemous_a hellhound_n be_v more_o worthy_a to_o be_v beat_v down_o with_o thunderbolt_n and_o so_o forth_o as_o fulke_n know_v how_o to_o amplify_v but_o that_o afore_o he_o lack_v matter_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n now_o after_o this_o to_o see_v this_o man_n so_o cold_a for_o the_o honour_n or_o rather_o so_o impious_o set_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n mother_n as_o first_o to_o quit_v the_o heluidian_o and_o antidicomarianitae_n 453._o august_n ad_fw-la quodvult_n haer._n 84._o epip_n haer._n 78._o pur._n 453._o who_o be_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n condemn_v as_o heretic_n for_o deny_v her_o perpetual_a virginity_n but_o he_o notwithstanding_o say_v as_o for_o the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o can_v think_v it_o be_v true_a so_o because_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o reveal_v it_o neither_o pertain_v it_o unto_o we_o we_o make_v no_o question_n of_o it_o no_o it_o pertain_v not_o unto_o you_o to_o accurse_v old_a heretic_n but_o to_o join_v with_o old_a heretic_n that_o pertain_v unto_o you_o and_o also_o to_o forge_v new_a principle_n as_o that_o same_o of_o only_a scripture_n in_o their_o favour_n yea_o and_o also_o to_o contradict_v yourself_o for_o the_o matter_n for_o but_o four_o line_n afore_o you_o say_v all_o truth_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o now_o of_o this_o we_o can_v think_v it_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o reveal_v it_o you_o may_v with_o more_o honesty_n have_v say_v that_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n namely_o where_o she_o say_v quoniam_fw-la virum_fw-la non_fw-la cognosco_fw-la because_o i_o know_v not_o man_n that_o be_v 4._o luc._n 1._o au._n de_fw-mi san_fw-it virg_n ca._n 4._o because_o i_o have_v make_v a_o vow_n of_o virginity_n how_o therefore_o can_v i_o have_v a_o child_n but_o this_o place_n you_o can_v not_o aleage_v you_o wot_v for_o another_o cause_n neither_o do_v i_o say_v that_o it_o prove_v invincible_o her_o perpetual_a virginity_n although_o it_o so_o prove_v her_o vow_n for_o i_o know_v that_o beside_o her_o vow_n it_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o she_o never_o sin_v against_o her_o vow_n nor_o have_v a_o dispensation_n of_o god_n for_o it_o second_o you_o control_v d._n allen_n 86.87_o pur._n 86.87_o where_o say_v that_o the_o just_a person_n sin_v he_o except_v christ_n and_o for_o his_o honour_n his_o mother_n you_o think_v it_o must_v then_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o saviour_n of_o his_o mother_n and_o she_o have_v no_o need_n of_o his_o salvation_n if_o you_o have_v be_v a_o reader_n of_o s._n augustine_n as_o you_o be_v of_o caluine_n you_o may_v have_v easy_o remember_v that_o he_o say_v the_o very_a same_o that_o d._n allen_n do_v a_o piece_n of_o pelagius_n his_o heresy_n be_v that_o a_o man_n may_v live_v without_o all_o sin_n 36._o au._n the_o nat_n &_o gra_fw-mi c._n 36._o he_o allege_v for_o it_o the_o example_n of_o so_o many_o just_a person_n commend_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n mother_n say_v that_o to_o confess_v she_o without_o sin_n necesse_fw-la est_fw-la pietati_fw-la it_o be_v necessary_a for_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v impious_a how_o you_o will_v have_v answer_v he_o we_o see_v special_o think_v you_o have_v scripture_n for_o her_o sin_v because_o christ_n say_v unto_o she_o why_o do_v you_o seek_v i_o 2._o luc._n 2._o joan._n 2._o etc._n etc._n and_o what_o to_o i_o and_o thou_o o_o woman_n etc._n etc._n you_o think_v that_o christ_n here_o reprove_v she_o and_o that_o he_o have_v do_v she_o wrong_n herein_o if_o she_o do_v not_o sin_n you_o may_v do_v well_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v those_o sin_n of_o she_o s._n augustine_n can_v not_o see_v any_o there_o nor_o else_o where_o but_o say_v plain_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o pelagius_n although_o the_o contrary_a have_v be_v for_o his_o vantage_n against_o he_o except_v the_o holy_a virgin_n mary_n of_o who_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o will_v have_v no_o question_n in_o the_o world_n when_o we_o talk_v of_o sin_n ind_n enim_fw-la scimus_fw-la for_o by_o this_o we_o know_v that_o more_o grace_n be_v give_v to_o she_o to_o overcome_v sin_n altogether_o because_o she_o be_v worthy_a to_o conceive_v and_o bring_v forth_o he_o who_o it_o be_v certain_a to_o have_v have_v no_o sin_n dishonour_n the_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v by_o fulke_n his_o dishonour_n where_o also_o you_o see_v that_o she_o not_o sin_v do_v not_o argue_v as_o after_o your_o divinity_n that_o she_o have_v no_o need_n of_o christ_n grace_n 23._o con._n tri._n sesse_n 6._o can_n 23._o but_o the_o clean_a contrary_n that_o she_o have_v so_o much_o the_o more_o of_o his_o grace_n than_o any_o other_o